Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n body_n head_n mystical_a 7,900 5 10.7556 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A26947 A key for Catholicks, to open the jugling of the Jesuits, and satisfie all that are but truly willing to understand, whether the cause of the Roman or reformed churches be of God ... containing some arguments by which the meanest may see the vanity of popery, and 40 detections of their fraud, with directions, and materials sufficient for the confutation of their voluminous deceits ... : the second part sheweth (especially against the French and Grotians) that the Catholick Church is not united in any meerly humane head, either Pope or council / by Richard Baxter, a Catholick Christian and Pastor of a church ... Baxter, Richard, 1615-1691. 1659 (1659) Wing B1295; ESTC R19360 404,289 516

There are 36 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

and_o so_o it_o be_v apparent_a unto_o they_o yet_o most_o that_o be_v not_o member_n of_o it_o do_v not_o know_v it_o arrian_n and_o mahometan_n know_v we_o to_o be_v man_n profess_v such_o and_o such_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o they_o know_v not_o that_o to_o be_v the_o true_a faith_n nor_o we_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n but_o judge_v the_o contrary_n in_o this_o sense_n contain_v in_o these_o proposition_n it_o be_v that_o protestant_n deny_v the_o church_n to_o have_v be_v always_o visible_a and_o not_o as_o the_o papist_n common_o mistake_v they_o prop._n 4._o we_o be_v agree_v that_o this_o catholic_n church_n be_v but_o one_o there_o be_v not_o two_o visible_a nor_o two_o mystical_a catholic_n church_n nor_o be_v the_o mystical_a and_o visible_a two_o bellarmine_n may_v have_v spare_v all_o his_o labour_n that_o he_o have_v bestow_v in_o vain_a upon_o this_o point_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o visible_a and_o invisible_a be_v not_o two_o catholic_n church_n the_o protestant_n be_v further_o from_o that_o opinion_n than_o the_o papist_n and_o it_o be_v more_o suitable_a to_o the_o popish_a interest_n and_o cause_n to_o be_v of_o that_o opinion_n then_o to_o the_o protestant_n if_o it_o be_v not_o that_o they_o be_v past_a learning_n by_o the_o advantage_n of_o their_o infallibility_n and_o especial_o of_o one_o man_n and_o one_o so_o mean_v condemn_v by_o they_o and_o that_o it_o be_v unlawful_a to_o be_v a_o teacher_n of_o error_n i_o can_v tell_v they_o of_o a_o new_a device_n by_o the_o advantage_n of_o this_o distinction_n of_o catholic_n church_n for_o the_o model_a their_o mistake_n into_o a_o more_o specious_a plausible_a form_n than_o now_o it_o appear_v in_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n but_o we_o be_v glad_a of_o their_o company_n in_o any_o truth_n and_o therefore_o will_v not_o disagree_v from_o they_o in_o that_o which_o make_v against_o themselves_o one_o objection_n i_o once_o hear_v a_o learned_a anabaptist_n cast_v in_o our_o way_n viz._n there_o may_v be_v a_o visible_a church_n of_o hypocrite_n therefore_o the_o mystical_a and_o visible_a may_v be_v two_o answ_n but_o the_o question_n be_v of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o not_o of_o a_o particular_a church_n we_o confess_v that_o some_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v mystical_a and_o visible_a in_o the_o several_a respect_n before_o mention_v and_o that_o some_o be_v visible_a and_o not_o mystical_a or_o as_o bellarmine_n well_o call_v they_o dead_a member_n and_o not_o live_v and_o that_o the_o church_n as_o visible_a be_v more_o comprehensive_a than_o the_o church_n as_o regenerate_v or_o invisible_a and_o yet_o all_o but_o one_o church_n though_o it_o have_v more_o member_n in_o it_o in_o one_o respect_n then_o in_o another_o and_o we_o confess_v that_o its_o possible_a for_o twenty_o or_o a_o hundred_o of_o these_o dead_a member_n to_o constitute_v a_o particular_a church_n by_o themselves_o though_o it_o be_v not_o usual_a for_o visible_a church_n to_o be_v without_o live_v member_n and_o so_o there_o may_v be_v a_o particular_a visible_a dead_a member_n analogical_o call_v a_o member_n or_o a_o particular_a visible_a church_n that_o be_v thus_o dead_a and_o these_o be_v part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n as_o visible_a but_o yet_o there_o be_v not_o two_o catholic_n church_n one_o visible_a and_o the_o other_o invisible_a one_o alive_a and_o the_o other_o dead_a in_o a_o corn_n field_n there_o be_v 1._o good_a corn._n 2._o strike_v blast_a corn_n that_o have_v a_o name_n and_o show_v but_o in_o deed_n no_o corn._n 3._o tare_n darnel_n cockle_n and_o such_o weed_n it_o be_v call_v a_o field_n as_o it_o contain_v they_o all_o it_o be_v call_v a_o corn_n field_n only_o from_o the_o corn._n the_o univocal_a proper_a part_n of_o a_o corn_n field_n be_v the_o corn_n only_o the_o visible_a and_o analogical_a part_n be_v also_o the_o blast_a ear_n the_o darnel_n and_o cockle_n be_v no_o part_n but_o noxious_a accident_n there_o be_v not_o two_o field_n of_o corn_n one_o of_o true_a corn_n and_o the_o of_o other_o blast_a ear_n and_o yet_o the_o corn_n field_n take_v large_o and_o analogical_o have_v more_o party_n in_o it_o then_o true_a corn_n and_o you_o may_v perhaps_o have_v some_o particular_a sheau_n that_o be_v whole_o of_o that_o which_o be_v blast_v which_o you_o will_v call_v a_o sheaf_n of_o corn_n analogical_o only_o but_o a_o sheaf_n of_o weed_n you_o will_v not_o at_o all_o call_v a_o sheaf_n of_o corn._n even_o so_o in_o the_o catholic_n church_n there_o be_v sincere_a christian_n which_o be_v true_a and_o live_a member_n and_o there_o be_v hypocrite_n which_o be_v analogical_o member_n and_o there_o be_v local_o mix_v many_o that_o by_o deny_v essential_a point_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n or_o by_o notorious_a impiety_n do_v declare_v themselves_o to_o be_v weed_n and_o no_o member_n of_o the_o church_n at_o all_o prop._n 5._o we_o be_v also_o agree_v that_o this_o one_o visible_a catholic_n church_n be_v one_o political_a holy_a society_n as_o unite_v in_o jesus_n christ_n the_o head_n who_o teach_v and_o rule_v it_o by_o his_o minister_n and_o other_o officer_n in_o the_o several_a part_n according_a to_o the_o necessity_n of_o each_o we_o call_v it_o one_o political_a society_n 1._o principal_o because_o that_o all_o the_o church_n be_v unite_v in_o this_o one_o sovereign_n or_o head_n the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v call_v his_o body_n 2._o they_o have_v all_o the_o same_o holy_a doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o law_n to_o live_v by_o and_o be_v judge_v by_o 3._o they_o have_v all_o church_n officer_n of_o the_o same_o sort_n under_o christ_n to_o teach_v and_o govern_v they_o 4._o they_o have_v all_o the_o same_o kind_n of_o holy_a ordinance_n as_o read_v preach_a pray_v praise_n sacrament_n etc._n etc._n appoint_v they_o by_o the_o lord_n 5._o they_o be_v all_o engage_v in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o holy_a covenant_n to_o the_o lord_n more_o may_v be_v mention_v and_o shall_v be_v god_n willing_a in_o a_o peculiar_a treatise_n of_o catholicism_n or_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o though_o christ_n himself_o be_v not_o now_o see_v among_o we_o yet_o may_v he_o true_o be_v call_v a_o visible_a head_n for_o 1._o he_o sometime_o live_v visible_o on_o earth_n 2._o and_o be_v now_o the_o visible_a king_n of_o all_o the_o church_n as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o heaven_n though_o we_o see_v he_o not_o the_o celestial_a inhabitant_n do_v it_o be_v but_o little_a of_o the_o world_n that_o see_v the_o pope_n any_o more_o than_o they_o see_v christ_n if_o one_o unseen_a to_o we_o may_v be_v a_o pretend_a visible_a head_n the_o other_o may_v be_v true_o so_o so_o that_o the_o body_n head_n law_n worship_n etc._n etc._n be_v visible_a so_o be_v the_o policy_n prop._n 6._o we_o be_v agree_v also_o that_o all_o these_o christian_n and_o particular_a church_n be_v oblige_v by_o christ_n even_o by_o the_o very_a law_n of_o nature_n and_o the_o end_n of_o their_o call_n and_o the_o general_a law_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o live_v in_o as_o much_o love_n and_o unity_n and_o peace_n as_o they_o can_v and_o to_o hold_v as_o full_a and_o extensive_a communion_n as_o they_o can_v that_o be_v as_o far_o as_o their_o work_n require_v and_o their_o capacity_n will_v permit_v and_o enable_v they_o those_o that_o be_v cohabitan_n and_o member_n of_o one_o congregation_n must_v hold_v local_a communion_n in_o that_o congregation_n unless_o necessity_n prohibit_v those_o that_o through_o distance_n be_v uncapable_a of_o join_v in_o the_o same_o assembly_n shall_v yet_o be_v conjoin_v 1._o in_o the_o same_o lord_n faith_n baptism_n covenant_n profession_n 2._o in_o the_o same_o bond_n of_o christian_a special_a love_n 3._o in_o the_o use_n of_o the_o same_o sort_n of_o holy_a worship_n as_o to_o the_o substance_n though_o they_o differ_v in_o circumstance_n as_o in_o the_o word_n prayer_n praise_n sacrament_n etc._n etc._n 4._o and_o in_o one_o sort_n of_o church_n officer_n and_o government_n and_o as_o far_o as_o we_o have_v to_o do_v with_o each_o other_o all_o this_o shall_v be_v manifest_v and_o we_o shall_v ready_o own_v one_o another_o as_o brethren_n and_o true_a church_n notwithstanding_o lesser_a difference_n prop._n 7._o to_o these_o end_v it_o be_v meet_v that_o the_o bishop_n or_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v hold_v in_o way_n of_o association_n as_o frequent_a assembly_n as_o be_v needful_a for_o the_o maintain_n of_o mutual_a love_n and_o correspondency_n and_o right_a understanding_n of_o each_o other_o and_o to_o manifest_v their_o unity_n and_o assist_v each_o other_o in_o the_o work_n of_o god_n that_o it_o may_v be_v the_o more_o successful_o carry_v on_o by_o unite_a strength_n against_o
and_o the_o unholiness_n of_o we_o and_o 1._o of_o their_o canonize_v saint_n p._n 214_o 217._o 2._o of_o the_o strictness_n of_o their_o religious_a order_n 3._o of_o their_o unmarried_a clergy_n p._n 227._o 4._o their_o holy_a ceremony_n chap._n 35._o detect_v 26._o their_o demand_v of_o we_o to_o tell_v they_o when_o every_o one_o of_o their_o corruption_n do_v begin_v p._n 233._o their_o novelty_n prove_v p._n 234_o etc._n etc._n a_o confutation_n of_o a_o papist_n m._n s._n on_o this_o point_n which_o be_v send_v to_o mr._n millard_n near_o sturbridge_n p._n 244._o chap._n 36._o detect_v 27._o they_o charge_v we_o with_o new_a article_n for_o deny_v their_o new_a article_n of_o faith_n and_o then_o bid_v we_o prove_v the_o succession_n of_o our_o negative_n p._n 258._o chap._n 37._o detect_v 28._o they_o conclude_v that_o they_o be_v the_o safe_a religion_n because_o it_o be_v most_o uncharitable_a and_o damn_v other_o and_o we_o the_o less_o safe_a because_o the_o more_o charitable_a p._n 261._o they_o admit_v or_o save_v heathen_n while_o they_o will_v damn_v protestant_n prove_v p._n 265._o chap._n 38._o detect_v 29._o they_o win_v the_o great_a one_o and_o multitude_n by_o suit_v their_o doctrine_n and_o worship_n to_o the_o fleshly_a conceit_n and_o inclination_n of_o ungodly_a man_n p._n 271._o show_v in_o twenty_o instance_n chap._n 39_o detect_v 30._o they_o pick_v up_o the_o mistake_v or_o harsh_a passage_n of_o some_o particular_a divine_n and_o persuade_v man_n that_o these_o be_v the_o protestant_a religion_n p._n 279._o a_o confutation_n of_o cardinal_n richlieu'_v twelve_o accusation_n or_o argument_n against_o the_o protestant_n p._n 280_o 281_o etc._n etc._n chap._n 42._o detect_v 33._o their_o pretence_n of_o a_o divine_a institution_n and_o natural_a excellency_n of_o a_o visible_a monarchical_a government_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n detect_v p._n 297._o a_o answer_n to_o the_o ridiculous_a reason_n of_o cardinal_n boverius_n to_o prince_n charles_n p._n 297._o chap._n 43._o detect_v 34._o their_o new_a device_n of_o receive_v nothing_o as_o scripture_n evidence_n but_o the_o express_a word_n p_o 307._o chap._n 44._o detect_v 35._o they_o choose_v such_o person_n to_o dispute_v with_o against_o who_o they_o have_v some_o notable_a advantage_n p._n 312._o chap._n 45._o detect_v 36._o their_o design_n to_o divide_v we_o or_o sow_v heresy_n among_o the_o vulgar_a and_o then_o draw_v they_o to_o some_o odious_a practice_n p._n 313._o about_o our_o late_a change_n and_o war_n and_o heresy_n in_o england_n the_o protestant_n and_o particular_o the_o presbyterian_o vindicate_v from_o their_o charge_n of_o kill_v the_o late_a king_n p._n 321._o yet_o the_o case_n different_a from_o they_o p._n 323._o how_o papist_n have_v creep_v into_o most_o party_n p._n 327._o what_o heresy_n and_o sect_n be_v their_o proper_a spawn_n p._n 330._o chap._n 46._o detect_v 37._o they_o hide_v themselves_o in_o their_o agent_n and_o new_a convert_v the_o mean_n our_o danger_n by_o the_o hider_n the_o detection_n p._n 337._o to_o 345._o chap._n 47._o detect_v 38._o their_o exceed_a industry_n to_o pervert_v man_n of_o interest_n and_o power_n p._n 345._o chap._n 48._o detect_v 39_o their_o treason_n against_o the_o life_n of_o prince_n and_o the_o peace_n of_o nation_n and_o their_o dissolve_v the_o bond_n of_o oath_n and_o covenant_n and_o make_v perjury_n and_o rebellion_n to_o seem_v duty_n and_o meritorius_fw-la p._n 348._o prove_v from_o themselves_o their_o recrimination_n about_o the_o late_a king_n death_n further_o refell_v p._n 355._o chap._n 49._o detect_v 40._o their_o last_o course_n be_v to_o turn_v to_o open_a hostility_n and_o stir_v up_o prince_n to_o war_n and_o blood_n p._n 356._o chap._n 50._o some_o proposal_n to_o the_o papist_n for_o a_o hopeless_a peace_n p._n 364._o the_o content_n of_o the_o second_o part._n quest_n whether_o the_o way_n to_o heal_v the_o division_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v by_o draw_v they_o all_o into_o one_o universal_a visible_a political_a body_n under_o one_o universal_a visible_a head_n or_o government_n or_o whether_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v a_o body_n so_o unite_v and_o govern_v neg._n chap._n 1._o show_v the_o occasion_n and_o reason_n of_o this_o writing_n especial_o as_o from_o the_o grotian_o mr._n pierce_n exception_n manifest_v to_o be_v frivelous_a p._n 379._o grotius_n speak_v english_a to_o gratify_v mr._n pierce_n p._n 383._o chap._n 2._o the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o controversy_n and_o what_o consociation_n of_o pastor_n and_o union_n of_o church_n we_o grant_v p._n 394._o chap._n 3._o our_o argument_n for_o the_o negative_a fifteen_o reason_n against_o the_o pope_n sovereignty_n brief_o name_v p._n 402._o against_o the_o headship_n of_o pope_n or_o general_n council_n argum_fw-la 1._o from_o the_o nonexistence_n of_o a_o universal_a head_n p._n 404._o argum._n 2._o it_o never_o do_v exist_v much_o less_o in_o continue_a succession_n p._n 406._o argum._n 3._o a_o general_n council_n unnecessary_a impossible_a and_o will_v be_v unjust_a p._n 409._o prove_v to_o p._n 421._o argum._n 4._o if_o assemble_v it_o can_v not_o possible_o do_v the_o work_n of_o the_o head_n or_o sovereign_n p._n 421._o argum._n 5._o none_o have_v power_n to_o summon_v a_o general_n council_n p._n 421._o argum._n 6._o pope_n nor_o council_n have_v not_o the_o legislative_a power_n to_o the_o church_n universal_a p._n 423._o argum._n 7._o pope_n nor_o council_n be_v not_o the_o fountain_n of_o power_n to_o all_o church-officer_n p._n 425._o argum._n 8._o in_o great_a cause_n all_o may_v not_o appeal_v to_o they_o nor_o can_v they_o final_o decide_v p._n 425._o argum._n 9_o they_o can_v put_v down_o other_o inferior_a officer_n through_o the_o world_n p._n 426._o argum._n 10._o &_o 11._o our_o relation_n to_o such_o a_o head_n not_o essential_a to_o our_o christianity_n nor_o be_v we_o baptize_v into_o such_o a_o head_n p._n 127._o argum._n 12._o this_o head_n no_o principle_n ancient_o teach_v the_o catechize_v p._n 428._o argum._n 13._o &_o 14._o it_o be_v no_o treason_n or_o damn_v sin_n to_o deny_v this_o head_n nor_o be_v all_o christian_n bind_v to_o study_v the_o law_n of_o pope_n and_o council_n p._n 428_o 429._o argum._n 15._o &_o 16._o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v evident_a to_o all_o the_o member_n and_o his_o law_n certain_a p._n 430._o argum._n 17._o &_o 18._o council_n and_o decretal_n must_v not_o be_v usual_o preach_v a_o visible_a head_n not_o agree_v on_o among_o papist_n and_o therefore_o as_o none_o p._n 431._o argum._n 19_o no_o such_o head_n reveal_v in_o scripture_n p._n 432._o argum._n 20._o the_o scripture_n appropriate_v the_o sovereignty_n to_o christ_n only_o p._n 433._o prove_v and_o the_o objection_n answer_v chap._n 4._o open_v the_o true_a ground_n on_o which_o the_o church_n unity_n and_o peace_n must_v be_v seek_v and_o the_o mean_n that_o must_v be_v use_v to_o attain_v so_o much_o as_o be_v here_o to_o be_v expect_v 1._o the_o general_a ground_n p._n 440._o the_o true_a particular_a ground_n of_o peace_n in_o twenty_o proposition_n p._n 442._o what_o unity_n to_o be_v here_o expect_v p._n 443._o the_o application_n of_o the_o foresay_a ground_n or_o the_o reduction_n of_o they_o into_o practice_n p._n 453._o the_o conclusion_n p._n 455._o errata_fw-la page_n 24._o l._n 9_o r._n platina_n p._n 30._o l._n 9_o r._n formosus_fw-la p._n 31._o l._n 19_o r._n cardinal_n p._n 58._o l._n 13._o r._n mean_v time_n p._n 59_o l._n 5._o &_o 16._o r._n filiutius_fw-la &_o l._n 9_o &_o 25._o r._n bauny_a &_o l._n 13._o r._n a_o man_n may_v do_v p._n 61._o l._n 7._o r._n baldellus_fw-la l._n 23._o r._n escobar_n p._n 78._o l._n 15._o blot_n out_o too_o p._n 82._o l._n 3_o blot_v out_o not_o p._n 104._o l._n 15._o for_o reason_v r._n cease_v p._n 126._o l._n penult_n for_o of_o r._n take_v p._n 131._o l._n penult_n r._n vignerius_n p._n 134._o l._n 36._o for_o five_o act_n r._n the_o five_o act._n p._n 145._o l._n 9_o r._n to_o receive_v so_o many_o &_o l._n 19_o r._n when_o he_o have_v p._n 157._o l._n 34._o for_o jus_n r._n jos_n p._n 170._o l._n 9_o for_o which_o r._n with_o p._n 195._o l._n 35._o for_o this_o r._n he_o p._n 196._o l._n 36._o r._n baldwin_n p._n 206._o l._n 27._o for_o of_o r._n or_o &_o l._n 28._o for_o dr._n r._n d._n p._n 213._o l._n 7._o r._n when_o we_o do_v p._n 220._o l._n 36._o r._n dan_o tes_fw-fr p._n 224._o l._n 2._o &_o 3_o 4._o r._n the_o name_n in_o the_o accus_n case_n p._n 225._o l._n 8._o r._n yourself_o p._n 259._o l._n 31._o r._n anathema_n p._n 261._o l._n 35._o r._n not_o for_o nor_o p._n 266._o l._n 17._o r._n that_o it_o be_v l._n 28._o r._n canus_n p._n 267._o l._n 10._o r._n to_o
the_o church_n of_o rome_n even_o its_o head_n have_v be_v unholy_a through_o many_o generation_n than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v be_v unholy_a for_o many_o generation_n but_o a_o essential_a part_n even_o the_o head_n have_v be_v unholy_a therefore_o etc._n etc._n the_o consequence_n of_o the_o major_n be_v past_a denial_n bonum_fw-la est_fw-la ex_fw-la causis_fw-la integris_fw-la though_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n be_v holy_a because_o one_o essential_a part_n be_v holy_a yet_o it_o clear_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n be_v unholy_a because_o a_o essential_a part_n be_v unholy_a as_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o the_o body_n be_v sound_a because_o the_o head_n be_v sound_a yet_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o man_n or_o the_o body_n be_v unsound_a or_o sick_a because_o the_o head_n be_v unsound_a or_o sick_a as_o it_o be_v not_o a_o church_n without_o all_o its_o essential_a part_n so_o it_o be_v not_o a_o holy_a church_n without_o the_o holiness_n of_o all_o its_o essential_a part_n and_o that_o they_o make_v the_o pope_n the_o head_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o a_o essential_a part_n i_o be_o loath_a to_o prove_v i_o will_v i_o can_v but_o entice_v they_o to_o deny_v it_o for_o it_o be_v the_o principal_a controversy_n between_o they_o and_o the_o true_a catholic_n and_o that_o abundance_n of_o their_o pope_n have_v be_v unholy_a i_o have_v former_o prove_v and_o they_o dare_v not_o i_o hope_v deny_v it_o when_o their_o own_o historian_n describe_v their_o impiety_n and_o their_o own_o writer_n even_o those_o that_o be_v bitter_a against_o we_o do_v free_o confess_v it_o yea_o general_a council_n have_v judge_v they_o and_o cast_v they_o out_o the_o number_n of_o these_o monster_n be_v so_o great_a that_o it_o will_v make_v a_o volume_n great_a than_o i_o intend_v but_o to_o name_v they_o and_o recite_v their_o crime_n i_o will_v give_v a_o brief_a instance_n of_o one_o of_o they_o pope_n john_n the_o twenty_o three_o be_v accuse_v and_o depose_v by_o the_o general_n council_n at_o constance_n upon_o about_o seventy_o article_n which_o in_o binnius_n take_v up_o about_o thirteen_o colume_n in_o folio_n and_o therefore_o i_o suppose_v you_o will_v give_v i_o no_o thanks_o to_o trouble_v you_o with_o the_o recital_n of_o they_o all_o the_o first_o article_n be_v that_o he_o be_v from_o his_o youth_n a_o man_n of_o a_o bad_a disposition_n immodest_a impudent_a a_o liar_n a_o rebel_n and_o disobedient_a to_o his_o parent_n and_o give_v to_o most_o vice_n and_o then_o be_v and_o yet_o be_v common_o take_v for_o such_o a_o one_o by_o all_o that_o know_v he_o the_o second_o article_n be_v how_o by_o simoniacal_a and_o unjust_a mean_n he_o grow_v rich_a the_o three_o article_n that_o by_o simony_n he_o be_v promote_v to_o be_v a_o cardinal_n the_o four_o article_n that_o be_v legate_n at_o bononia_n he_o govern_v tyrannical_o impious_o unjust_o be_v whole_o alien_n from_o all_o christian_a piety_n and_o justice_n divine_a and_o humane_a etc._n etc._n the_o five_o article_n that_o thus_o he_o get_v to_o be_v pope_n and_o yet_o continue_v as_o bad_a and_o as_o a_o pagan_a despise_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o if_o he_o perform_v any_o it_o be_v more_o lest_o he_o shall_v be_v total_o blame_v of_o heresy_n and_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o papacy_n then_o for_o any_o devotion_n and_o he_o huddle_v it_o up_o like_o a_o hunter_n or_o a_o soldier_n the_o six_o article_n be_v that_o he_o be_v the_o oppressor_n of_o the_o poor_a the_o persecutor_n of_o righteousness_n the_o pillar_n of_o the_o unjust_a and_o the_o simoniacal_a a_o server_n of_o the_o flesh_n the_o dregs_o of_o vice_n a_o stranger_n to_o virtue_n fly_v from_o public_a consistory_n whole_o give_v to_o sleep_v and_o earnal_a desire_n whole_o contrary_a to_o the_o life_n and_o manner_n of_o christ_n the_o mirror_n of_o infamy_n and_o the_o profound_a inventor_n of_o all_o mischief_n so_o far_o scandalize_a the_o church_n of_o christ_n that_o among_o christian_a believer_n that_o know_v his_o life_n and_o manner_n he_o be_v common_o call_v the_o devil_n incarnate_a the_o seven_o article_n be_v that_o be_v a_o vessel_n of_o all_o sin_n repel_v the_o worthy_a he_o simonical_o sell_v benefice_n bishopric_n and_o church_n dignity_n open_o to_o the_o unworthy_a that_o will_v give_v most_o for_o they_o reader_n i_o shall_v but_o weary_v thou_o to_o add_v threescore_o more_o of_o these_o article_n these_o be_v all_o prove_v to_o be_v notorious_a by_o cardinal_n archbishop_n bishop_n and_o many_o more_o yet_o i_o will_v crave_v thy_o patience_n while_o i_o add_v but_o two_o or_o three_o of_o the_o last_o another_o be_v that_o he_o come_v to_o be_v pope_n by_o cause_v pope_n alexander_n and_o his_o physician_n dr._n daniel_n de_fw-fr sophia_fw-la to_o be_v poison_v another_o be_v that_o he_o commit_v incest_n with_o his_o brother_n wife_n and_o with_o the_o holy_a nun_n and_o whoredom_n with_o virgin_n and_o adultery_n with_o man_n wife_n and_o other_o crime_n of_o incontinency_n for_o which_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n come_v on_o the_o child_n of_o disobedience_n another_o that_o he_o be_v a_o wicked_a man_n notorious_o guilty_a of_o murder_n witchcraft_n and_o other_o grievous_a crime_n a_o dissipater_n of_o the_o church_n good_n a_o notorious_a simonist_n and_o pertinacious_a heretic_n the_o next_o article_n be_v that_o often_o and_o often_o before_o divers_a prelate_n and_o other_o honest_a man_n by_o the_o devil_n persuasion_n he_o obstinate_o assert_v dogmatize_v and_o maintain_v that_o there_o be_v no_o life_n everlasting_a nor_o any_o other_o after_o this_o moreover_o he_o say_v and_o obstinate_o believe_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n do_v die_v and_o be_v extinct_a with_o the_o body_n like_o the_o bruit_n beast_n and_o that_o the_o dead_a shall_v not_o rise_v again_o at_o the_o last_o day_n contrary_a to_o the_o article_n of_o the_o resurrection_n the_o last_o and_o some_o other_o article_n be_v about_o his_o perfidiousness_n and_o hereupon_o the_o council_n depose_v he_o and_o now_o reader_n i_o leave_v thou_o to_o judge_v whether_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v a_o holy_a head_n when_o it_o have_v a_o heathen_a and_o a_o devil_n incarnate_a so_o the_o general_a council_n at_o basil_n depose_v pope_n eugenius_n 4._o as_o be_v a_o rebel_n against_o the_o holy_a canon_n a_o notorious_a disturber_n and_o scandalizer_n of_o the_o peace_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n a_o simonist_n and_o a_o perjure_a wretch_n incorrigible_a a_o schismatic_n and_o a_o obstinate_a heretic_n pope_n john_n 13._o alias_o 12._o be_v in_o council_n convict_v of_o ravish_a maid_n wife_n widow_n at_o the_o apostolic_a door_n and_o commit_v many_o murder_n he_o drink_v a_o health_n to_o the_o devil_n and_o at_o dice_n call_v to_o jupiter_n and_o venus_n for_o help_v and_o at_o last_o be_v slay_v in_o the_o act_n of_o adultery_n say_v plutina_fw-la he_o be_v from_o his_o youth_n a_o man_n contaminate_v with_o all_o dishonesty_n and_o filthiness_n and_o if_o he_o have_v any_o time_n to_o spare_v from_o his_o lust_n he_o spend_v it_o in_o hunt_v and_o not_o in_o pray_v and_o after_o he_o call_v he_o a_o most_o wicked_a man_n or_o rather_o a_o menster_n and_o say_v that_o the_o life_n of_o this_o most_o wicked_a man_n be_v judge_v in_o a_o council_n of_o italian_a bishop_n for_o fear_v of_o they_o he_o flee_v and_o live_v like_o a_o wild_a beast_n in_o the_o wood_n till_o at_o last_o he_o get_v the_o better_a again_o by_o the_o help_n of_o his_o friend_n at_o rome_n till_o a_o angry_a man_n that_o find_v he_o naught_o with_o his_o wife_n get_v the_o better_a of_o he_o and_o send_v he_o to_o answer_v it_o in_o another_o world_n and_o their_o own_o writer_n note_v that_o this_o be_v the_o first_o pope_n that_o change_v his_o name_n who_o his_o follower_n imitate_v and_o do_v you_o think_v the_o head_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v then_o holy_a if_o it_o be_v a_o disputable_a matter_n i_o will_v prove_v out_o of_o abundance_n of_o their_o own_o writer_n that_o many_o other_o of_o they_o have_v be_v most_o wicked_a wretch_n common_a adulterer_n and_o fornicator_n yea_o sodomite_n poison_v their_o predecessor_n to_o get_v the_o popedom_n etc._n etc._n but_o it_o be_v needless_a because_o they_o deny_v it_o not_o baronius_n their_o flatter_a champion_n say_v annal_n add_v a_o 912._o what_o then_o be_v the_o face_n of_o the_o holy_a roman_a church_n how_o exceed_v filthy_a when_o the_o most_o potent_a and_o yet_o the_o most_o sordid_a whore_n do_v rule_v at_o rome_n by_o who_o pleasure_n see_v be_v change_v bishop_n be_v give_v and_o which_o be_v a_o thing_n horrid_a to_o be_v hear_v and_o not_o to_o be_v speak_v their_o lover_n or_o mate_n be_v thrust_v into_o peter_n chair_n
be_v false_a pope_n who_o be_v not_o to_o be_v write_v in_o the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o roman_a pope_n but_o only_o for_o the_o mark_v out_o of_o such_o time_n and_o what_o kind_n of_o cardinal_n priest_n and_o deacon_n think_v you_o we_o must_v imagine_v that_o these_o monster_n do_v choose_v when_o nothing_o be_v so_o root_v in_o nature_n as_o for_o every_o one_o to_o beget_v his_o like_a and_o genebrard_n that_o spleenish_a papist_n li._n 4._o sec._n 10._o say_v in_o this_o one_o thing_n that_o age_n be_v unhappy_a that_o for_o near_o one_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o year_n about_o fifty_o pope_n do_v whole_o fall_v away_o from_o the_o virtue_n of_o their_o ancestor_n be_v rather_o irregular_a and_o apostatical_a then_o apostolical_a so_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o then_o either_o a_o holy_a or_o apostolical_a head_n and_o pope_n adrian_n the_o six_o himself_o write_v de_n sacram._n confir_n art_n 4._o that_o there_o have_v many_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v heretic_n and_o two_o or_o three_o several_a general_n council_n do_v condemn_v pope_n honorius_n for_o a_o heretic_n and_o if_o i_o shall_v tell_v you_o but_o what_o their_o own_o writer_n say_v of_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o roman_a clergy_n in_o many_o age_n and_o of_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o roman_a people_n of_o the_o large_a sum_n of_o money_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v yearly_a for_o the_o license_a or_o tolerate_v whore-house_n in_o rome_n you_o will_v think_v that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o particular_a roman_a church_n be_v near_o kin_n to_o the_o head_n and_o therefore_o not_o the_o holy_a mistress_n of_o all_o church_n but_o perhaps_o some_o will_v say_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v holy_a because_o his_o office_n be_v holy_a though_o his_o person_n vicious_a ans_fw-fr 1._o if_o this_o be_v the_o holiness_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n mention_v in_o the_o creed_n than_o the_o institution_n of_o office_n be_v it_o that_o make_v it_o holy_a and_o while_o the_o office_n continue_v the_o holiness_n can_v be_v lose_v 2._o then_o let_v they_o prove_v their_o holiness_n by_o saint_n no_o more_o 3._o let_v they_o not_o then_o delude_v the_o people_n but_o speak_v out_o and_o tell_v they_o that_o they_o mean_v such_o holiness_n as_o be_v consistent_a with_o heathenism_n or_o infidelity_n murder_n sodomy_n and_o may_v be_v in_o a_o incarnate_a devil_n be_v this_o the_o holiness_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n object_n but_o you_o may_v have_v unholy_a person_n among_o you_o also_o that_o yet_o say_v you_o be_v of_o the_o true_a church_n answ_n but_o they_o be_v no_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o we_o believe_v and_o therefore_o it_o may_v be_v a_o holy_a church_n though_o they_o be_v unholy_a but_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o they_o believe_v in_o and_o therefore_o it_o can_v not_o be_v holy_a if_o he_o be_v unholy_a object_n by_o this_o mean_v you_o leave_v no_o room_n for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o any_o papist_n in_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o be_v true_o holy_a answ_n not_o as_o papist_n so_o they_o can_v be_v no_o member_n of_o it_o but_o if_o with_o any_o of_o they_o christianity_n be_v predominant_a and_o prevail_v against_o the_o infection_n of_o popery_n so_o that_o it_o practical_o extinguish_v not_o christianity_n then_o as_o christian_n they_o may_v be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o be_v save_v too_o but_o not_o as_o papist_n chap._n vii_o argum._n 5._o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n of_o christ_n be_v but_o one_o the_o pretend_a roman_a catholic_n church_n be_v more_o than_o one_o therefore_o the_o pretend_a roman-catholick_n church_n be_v not_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n of_o christ_n the_o major_n be_v confess_v the_o minor_a i_o prove_v thus_o 1._o where_o there_o be_v two_o head_n or_o sovereign_a power_n specifical_o distinct_a there_o be_v two_o society_n or_o church_n but_o those_o call_a papist_n or_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n have_v two_o head_n or_o sovereign_a power_n specifical_o distinct_a therefore_o they_o be_v two_o church_n the_o major_n be_v grant_v by_o all_o politician_n who_o do_v without_o contradiction_n specify_v commonwealth_n and_o other_o political_a society_n from_o the_o sovereign_a power_n and_o so_o the_o monarchical_a aristocratical_a and_o democratical_a be_v several_a species_n the_o belgian_n commonwealth_n and_o the_o french_a be_v not_o specifical_o the_o same_o the_o minor_a have_v two_o stand_a proof_n so_o visible_a that_o he_o must_v be_v blind_a indeed_o that_o can_v see_v they_o first_o there_o be_v the_o many_o volume_n that_o be_v write_v by_o both_o side_n for_o their_o several_a form_n bellarmine_n gretsor_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o italian_a faction_n prove_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o chief_a power_n and_o above_o a_o general_n council_n and_o the_o seat_n of_o infallibility_n and_o not_o to_o be_v judge_v by_o any_o be_v himself_o the_o judge_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o the_o other_o party_n prove_v that_o a_o general_n council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v by_o they_o and_o may_v be_v depose_v by_o they_o if_o any_o say_v that_o they_o be_v but_o few_o and_o no_o true_a catholic_n of_o this_o opinion_n i_o answer_v than_o a_o general_n council_n be_v but_o few_o and_o no_o true_a catholic_n which_o yet_o be_v say_v by_o they_o to_o represent_v the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n for_o the_o general_n council_n of_o constance_n and_o of_o basil_n have_v peremptory_o assert_v it_o and_o repeat_v it_o over_o and_o over_o yea_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n say_v sesse_n ultim_fw-la that_o not_o one_o of_o the_o skilful_a do_v ever_o doubt_v but_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o a_o general_n council_n in_o thing_n that_o concern_v faith_n and_o that_o he_o can_v without_o their_o consent_n dissolve_v or_o remove_v a_o general_n council_n yea_o and_o that_o this_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n which_o without_o destruction_n of_o salvation_n can_v be_v deny_v and_o that_o the_o council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n defy_v and_o that_o it_o can_v be_v remove_v without_o their_o own_o consent_n and_o that_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n that_o be_v against_o these_o thing_n see_v binnius_n page_n 43._o 79._o 96._o and_o pope_n eugenius_n own_v this_o council_n ibid._n page_n 42._o and_o for_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n martin_n the_o five_o be_v choose_v by_o it_o and_o present_a in_o it_o and_o personal_o confirm_v it_o in_o these_o word_n quodomnia_fw-mi &_o singula_fw-la determinata_fw-la conclusa_fw-la &_o decreta_fw-la in_fw-la materiis_fw-la fidei_fw-la per_fw-la praesens_fw-la concilium_fw-la conciliariter_fw-la tenere_fw-la &_o inviolabiliter_fw-la observare_fw-la volebat_fw-la &_o nunquam_fw-la contraire_fw-fr quoquo_fw-la modo_fw-la ipsaque_fw-la sic_fw-la conciliariter_fw-la facta_fw-la approbat_fw-la &_o ratificat_fw-la &_o non_fw-la aliter_fw-la nec_fw-la alio_fw-la modo_fw-la that_o be_v what_o they_o do_v as_o a_o council_n and_o not_o what_o private_a member_n do_v you_o see_v then_o even_o general_a council_n represent_v the_o catholic_n church_n do_v not_o only_o say_v that_o a_o council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n but_o make_v it_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o damn_v those_o that_o deny_v it_o what_o then_o be_v become_v of_o bellarmine_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o champion_n but_o perhaps_o you_o will_v say_v they_o be_v but_o few_o on_o the_o other_o side_n i_o answer_v yes_o not_o only_o most_o pope_n and_o the_o italian_a clergy_n and_o the_o predominant_a party_n of_o papist_n but_o another_o general_a council_n even_o that_o at_o the_o lateran_n under_o julius_n 2._o and_o leo_fw-la 10._o express_o determine_v on_o the_o contrary_a that_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o a_o general_n council_n so_o that_o here_o be_v not_o only_o a_o undeniable_a proof_n that_o general_a council_n be_v fallible_a by_o their_o contradict_v each_o other_o and_o that_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n of_o reject_v some_o of_o they_o and_o consequent_o that_o the_o foundation_n of_o popery_n be_v rot_v but_o also_o here_o be_v one_o representative_a catholic_n church_n against_o another_o representative_a catholic_n church_n and_o one_o council_n for_o one_o species_n of_o sovereignty_n and_o another_o for_o another_o species_n of_o sovereignty_n so_o that_o undoubted_o it_o be_v not_o the_o same_o church_n that_o have_v two_o head_n of_o several_a sort_n 2._o and_o the_o nation_n that_o be_v on_o both_o side_n to_o this_o day_n be_v a_o proof_n beyond_o denial_n of_o their_o division_n the_o french_a on_o one_o side_n and_o the_o italian_n on_o the_o other_o and_o other_o nation_n divide_v between_o both_o so_o that_o the_o thing_n which_o they_o call_v by_o one_o name_n be_v two_o indeed_o but_o so_o be_v not_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n object_n
what_o though_o some_o in_o england_n take_v the_o king_n to_o be_v the_o sovereign_n and_o some_o the_o parliament_n and_o soom_n think_v it_o be_v in_o both_o conjunct_a do_v this_o prove_v that_o you_o be_v more_o than_o one_o commonwealth_n answ_n where_o the_o sovereignty_n be_v mix_v and_o not_o in_o either_o alone_a if_o any_o one_o shall_v set_v up_o the_o one_o as_o the_o only_a sovereign_n and_o subject_a the_o other_o to_o they_o they_o change_v the_o form_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n but_o do_v not_o set_v up_o two_o commonwealth_n but_o if_o half_o take_v one_o for_o the_o sovereign_n and_o the_o other_o half_o take_v the_o other_o for_o the_o sovereign_n they_o plain_o divide_v the_o commonwealth_n into_o two_o if_o they_o do_v it_o only_o in_o mind_n and_o the_o secret_a thought_n of_o their_o heart_n this_o can_v be_v know_v to_o other_o and_o so_o can_v be_v the_o ground_n of_o a_o society_n but_o if_o they_o do_v it_o by_o a_o public_a consent_n and_o practice_n they_o evident_o make_v two_o commonwealth_n what_o else_o bring_v we_o into_o a_o war_n which_o end_v not_o till_o one_o party_n be_v subdue_v it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o one_o political_a body_n shall_v have_v two_o sovereign_n specifical_o distinct_a indeed_o it_o may_v have_v five_o hundred_o natural_a person_n in_o the_o sovereignty_n as_o in_o a_o senate_n but_o they_o be_v but_o one_o political_a person_n or_o one_o summa_fw-la potestas_fw-la 2._o but_o i_o prove_v the_o minor_a by_o another_o argument_n where_o there_o be_v two_o three_o or_o four_o head_n or_o sovereign_n at_o once_o numerical_o distinct_a there_o be_v two_o or_o three_o or_o four_o church_n but_o the_o roman_a church_n pretend_v to_o be_v catholic_a have_v have_v two_o or_o three_o or_o four_o head_n at_o once_o numerical_o distinct_a therefore_o it_o be_v two_o or_o three_o or_o four_o church_n the_o major_n be_v a_o know_a truth_n to_o all_o that_o be_v verse_v in_o any_o degree_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o politic_n it_o be_v not_o only_o two_o species_n of_o sovereignty_n but_o two_o individual_a sovereign_n that_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o numerical_a unity_n of_o a_o political_a body_n two_o or_o ten_o or_o two_o hundred_o may_v join_v in_o one_o sovereignty_n as_o one_o political_a person_n as_o i_o say_v but_o if_o there_o be_v two_o sovereign_n there_o be_v certain_o two_o society_n for_o if_o both_o be_v supreme_a neither_o be_v subordinate_a the_o minor_a be_v not_o to_o be_v deny_v for_o the_o papist_n lay_v their_o very_a foundation_n on_o a_o suppose_a division_n for_o sooth_n peter_n and_o paul_n be_v both_o at_o once_o their_o bishop_n and_o there_o be_v not_o many_o of_o they_o that_o adventure_n to_o tell_v we_o that_o peter_n only_o be_v the_o supreme_a and_o that_o paul_n be_v under_o he_o but_o they_o make_v they_o as_o equal_n or_o coordinate_a and_o some_o of_o they_o say_v that_o paul_n be_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o uncircumcision_n and_o peter_n of_o the_o circumcision_n and_o then_o peter_n church_n be_v confine_v to_o the_o jew_n and_o they_o do_v not_o tell_v we_o that_o one_o headship_n be_v divide_v between_o they_o for_o then_o that_o example_n will_v direct_v they_o still_o to_o have_v two_o pope_n or_o two_o bishop_n to_o a_o church_n so_o that_o peter_n be_v a_o head_n and_o paul_n a_o head_n they_o have_v sure_o distinct_a body_n but_o whether_o they_o stand_v to_o this_o or_o not_o they_o can_v deny_v their_o many_o follow_v division_n the_o twenty_o three_o schism_n as_o wernerus_n a_o zealous_a papist_n in_o fasciculo_fw-la tempor_fw-la reckon_v they_o be_v between_o felix_n the_o five_o and_o eugenius_n of_o which_o the_o say_a wernerus_n speak_v say_v that_o hence_o arise_v great_a contention_n among_o the_o writer_n of_o this_o matter_n pro_fw-la &_o contra_fw-la and_o they_o can_v agree_v to_o this_o day_n for_o one_o part_n say_v that_o a_o council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n the_o other_o part_n on_o the_o contrary_n say_v no_o but_o the_o '_o pope_n be_v above_o the_o council_n god_n grant_v his_o church_n peace_n etc._n etc._n of_o the_o twenty_o second_o schism_n the_o same_o wernerus_n say_v thus_o ad_fw-la annum_fw-la 1373._o the_o twenty_o second_o schism_n be_v the_o wo●st_n and_o most_o subtle_a schism_n of_o all_o that_o be_v before_o it_o for_o it_o be_v so_o perplex_v that_o the_o most_o learned_a and_o conscientious_a man_n be_v not_o able_a to_o discuss_v or_o find_v out_o to_o who_o they_o shall_v adhere_v and_o it_o be_v continue_v for_o forty_o year_n to_o the_o great_a scandal_n of_o the_o whole_a lergy_n and_o the_o great_a loss_n of_o soul_n because_o of_o heresy_n and_o other_o evil_n that_o then_o spring_v up_o because_o there_o be_v then_o no_o discipline_n in_o the_o church_n against_o they_o and_o therefore_o from_o this_o urbane_n the_o sixtht_fw-mi to_o the_o time_n of_o martin_n the_o five_o i_o know_v not_o who_o be_v pope_n after_o nicolas_n the_o four_o there_o be_v no_o pope_n for_o two_o year_n and_o a_o half_a and_o celestine_n the_o five_o that_o succeed_v he_o resign_v it_o boniface_n the_o eight_o enter_v that_o still_v himself_o lord_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o spiritual_n and_o temporal_n of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v he_o enter_v as_o a_o fox_n live_v as_o a_o lion_n and_o die_v like_o a_o dog_n say_v the_o same_o wernerus_n the_o twenty_o schism_n say_v the_o same_o author_n be_v great_a between_o alexander_n the_o three_o and_o four_o schismatic_n and_o it_o last_v seventeen_o year_n the_o nineteen_o schism_n be_v between_o innocent_a the_o second_o and_o peter_z leonis_fw-la and_o innocent_o get_v the_o better_a because_o he_o have_v more_o on_o his_o side_n say_v he_o the_o thirteen_o schism_n say_v wernerus_n be_v between_o another_o and_o benedict_n the_o eight_o the_o fourteen_o schism_n say_v the_o same_o author_n be_v scandalous_a and_o full_a of_o confusion_n between_o benedict_n the_o nine_o and_o five_o other_o which_o benedict_n say_v he_o be_v whole_o vicious_a and_o therefore_o be_v damn_v appear_v in_o a_o monstrous_a and_o horrid_a shape_n his_o head_n and_o tail_n be_v like_o a_o ass_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o body_n like_o a_o bear_n say_v i_o thus_o appear_v because_o i_o live_v like_o a_o beast_n in_o this_o schism_n say_v wernerus_n there_o be_v no_o less_o than_o six_o pope_n at_o once_o 1._o benedict_n be_v expulse_v 2._o silvester_n the_o three_o get_v in_o but_o be_v cast_v out_o again_o and_o benedict_n restore_v 3._o but_o be_v again_o cast_v out_o gregory_z the_o six_o be_v put_v into_o his_o place_n who_o because_o he_o be_v ignorant_a of_o letter_n and_o yet_o infallible_a no_o doubt_n cause_v another_o pope_n to_o be_v consecrate_a with_o he_o to_o perform_v church_n office_n which_o be_v the_o four_o which_o displease_v many_o and_o therefore_o a_o three_o be_v choose_v which_o be_v the_o five_o instead_o of_o the_o two_o that_o be_v fight_v with_o one_o another_o but_o henry_n the_o emperor_n come_v in_o depose_v they_o all_o and_o choose_v clement_n the_o second_o who_o be_v the_o six_o of_o all_o they_o that_o be_v alive_a at_o once_o but_o above_o all_o schism_n that_o between_o armosus_fw-la and_o sergius_n and_o their_o follower_n be_v the_o foul_a such_o say_n and_o unsay_n do_v and_o undo_n there_o be_v beside_o the_o dismember_n of_o the_o dead_a pope_n and_o cast_v he_o into_o the_o water_n and_o of_o eight_o successor_n say_v wernerus_n i_o can_v say_v nothing_o observable_a of_o they_o because_o i_o find_v nothing_o of_o they_o but_o scandalous_a because_o of_o the_o unheard_a of_o contention_n in_o the_o holy_a apostolic_a sea_n one_o against_o another_o and_o together_o mutual_o against_o each_o other_o reader_n will_v thou_o be_v trouble_v with_o any_o more_o of_o these_o relation_n i_o tell_v thou_o nothing_o but_o from_o their_o own_o historian_n and_o that_o which_o multitude_n of_o they_o agree_v in_o i_o go_v not_o to_o a_o protestant_n for_o a_o word_n but_o one_o pope_n in_o those_o contentious_a time_n i_o find_v live_v in_o some_o peace_n and_o that_o be_v silvester_n the_o second_o of_o who_o say_v wernerus_n as_o other_o common_o this_o silvester_n be_v make_v pope_n by_o the_o help_n of_o the_o devil_n to_o who_o he_o do_v homage_n that_o all_o may_v go_v as_o he_o will_v have_v it_o but_o he_o quick_o meet_v with_o the_o usual_a end_n as_o one_o that_o have_v place_v his_o hope_n in_o deceitful_a devil_n well!_o i_o shall_v now_o appeal_v to_o reason_n itself_o whether_o this_o be_v one_o church_n that_o for_o forty_o or_o say_v other_o fifty_v year_n together_o have_v several_a head_n some_o of_o the_o people_n follow_v one_o and_o some_o another_o and_o the_o most_o learned_a and_o most_o conscientious_a not_o able_a
to_o church-worship_n catholic_a faith_n right_a reason_n and_o sacred_a scripture_n and_o that_o henceforth_o it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a for_o no_o man_n to_o preach_v and_o teach_v the_o contrary_a is_n not_o this_o plain_a defining_n obj._n but_o this_o be_v not_o a_o approve_a council_n answ_n 1._o it_o be_v own_v by_o pope_n eugenius_n himself_o and_o here_o once_o for_o all_o i_o prove_v that_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n be_v approve_v by_o the_o pope_n for_o pope_n felix_n the_o five_o one_o of_o the_o best_a pope_n that_o ever_o rome_n have_v this_o thousand_o year_n approve_v it_o in_o this_o point_n not_o only_o by_o accept_v their_o election_n but_o in_o express_a term_n profess_v firm_o to_o hold_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o basil_n and_o to_o keep_v it_o inviolate_a to_o a_o tittle_n and_o confirm_v it_o with_o his_o soul_n and_o blood_n promise_v faithful_o to_o labour_n to_o defend_v the_o catholic_n faith_n and_o for_o the_o execution_n and_o observation_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o basil_n swear_v to_o prosecute_v the_o celebration_n of_o general_n council_n and_o confirmation_n of_o election_n according_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o holy_a council_n of_o basil_n see_v binnius_n sesse_n 40._o page_n 87._o if_o they_o say_v that_o felix_n be_v not_o a_o true_a pope_n i_o answer_v than_o martin_n the_o five_o choose_v by_o the_o council_n at_o constance_n be_v no_o true_a pope_n and_o then_o where_o be_v your_o succession_n these_o thing_n be_v plain_a and_o can_v be_v deny_v though_o unconscionable_a shifter_n that_o argue_v according_a to_o their_o will_n may_v find_v word_n to_o be_v guile_n the_o simple_a 2_o it_o seem_v then_o your_o catholic_n church_n representative_a be_v nothing_o if_o one_o man_n like_o it_o not_o one_o more_o instance_n how_o large_o have_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n deal_v about_o original_a sin_n and_o yet_o the_o foresay_a thomas_n white_a ibid._n say_v thus_o if_o the_o people_n be_v teach_v original_a sin_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o disposition_n to_o evil_n or_o a_o natural_a weakness_n which_o unless_o prevent_v bring_v infallible_o sin_n and_o damnation_n and_o that_o in_o itself_o it_o deserve_v neither_o reproach_n nor_o punishment_n as_o long_o as_o it_o proceed_v not_o to_o actual_a sin_n the_o heat_n of_o vulgar_a devotion_n will_v be_v cool_v etc._n etc._n see_v here_o a_o mere_a pelagian_a issue_n of_o all_o the_o determination_n about_o original_a sin_n which_o they_o shall_v swear_v to_o believe_v chap._n xv._n detect_v 6._o and_o by_o this_o that_o have_v be_v say_v you_o may_v see_v what_o to_o think_v of_o their_o glory_v in_o their_o unity_n and_o accuse_v our_o division_n one_o of_o the_o principal_a argument_n that_o they_o prevail_v by_o be_v by_o tell_v the_o people_n into_o how_o many_o sect_n we_o be_v divide_v and_o that_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v but_o one_o but_o we_o be_v many_o and_o here_o they_o will_v tell_v you_o of_o all_o the_o name_n they_o can_v reckon_v up_o presbyterian_o independent_n anabaptist_n antinomian_o arminian_n socinian_o quaker_n and_o what_o not_o and_o they_o will_v tell_v you_o that_o all_o this_o division_n come_v by_o depart_v from_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n every_o man_n be_v leave_v to_o be_v of_o what_o religion_n his_o fancy_n lead_v he_o to_o for_o want_v of_o a_o universal_a judge_n of_o controversy_n and_o they_o will_v ask_v you_o what_o reason_n you_o have_v among_o all_o these_o sect_n to_o believe_v one_o of_o they_o rather_o than_o another_o so_o that_o they_o will_v persuade_v you_o that_o there_o be_v no_o way_n for_o unity_n but_o by_o turn_v to_o be_v papist_n that_o we_o may_v be_v unite_v in_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n to_o all_o this_o deceit_n for_o it_o be_v no_o better_a we_o give_v they_o our_o full_a answer_n in_o these_o proposition_n 1._o it_o be_v not_o every_o kind_n of_o unity_n that_o be_v desirable_a but_o unity_n with_o truth_n and_o honesty_n and_o safety_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o agree_v in_o evil_a then_o in_o good_a for_o evil_a find_v more_o friendship_n with_o corrupt_a nature_n and_o have_v more_o servant_n in_o the_o world_n the_o wicked_a be_v more_o agree_v and_o far_o more_o in_o number_n of_o one_o mind_n than_o the_o godly_a be_v the_o mahometan_n be_v far_o more_o agree_v and_o that_o in_o a_o far_o great_a number_n than_o the_o papist_n be_v the_o devil_n have_v some_o agreement_n in_o their_o way_n they_o be_v all_o agree_v to_o hate_n christ_n and_o his_o member_n and_o to_o seek_v night_n and_o day_n who_o they_o may_v devour_v it_o be_v easy_a to_o agree_v in_o a_o papist_n work_v then_o in_o we_o to_o ceat_a carnal_o in_o a_o sinful_a and_o oft_o a_o most_o wicked_a man_n to_o agree_v in_o certain_a form_n and_o ceremony_n which_o flesh_n and_o blood_n be_v glad_a to_o delude_v themselves_o with_o instead_o of_o the_o life_n of_o faith_n and_o love_n its_o easy_a to_o agree_v in_o such_o a_o carnal_a religion_n to_o spare_v the_o labour_n and_o time_n of_o study_n and_o search_v after_o truth_n and_o to_o cast_v their_o soul_n upon_o the_o faith_n of_o other_o even_o the_o pope_n or_o a_o council_n this_o be_v a_o easy_a thing_n for_o lazy_a ungodly_a man_n to_o agree_v in_o but_o to_o make_v the_o truth_n our_o own_o and_o get_v the_o law_n of_o christ_n write_v in_o our_o own_o heart_n and_o to_o live_v upon_o it_o and_o walk_v in_o the_o light_n and_o embrace_v all_o those_o truth_n that_o be_v most_o against_o our_o fleshly_a inclination_n and_o interest_n this_o be_v not_o so_o easy_a for_o corrupt_a nature_n to_o agree_v upon_o 2._o christ_n have_v tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v a_o little_a flock_n to_o who_o he_o give_v the_o kingdom_n luke_n 12._o 32._o and_o that_o the_o gate_n be_v straight_o and_o the_o way_n narrow_a that_o lead_v to_o life_n and_o few_o there_o be_v that_o find_v it_o and_o the_o gate_n be_v wide_a and_o the_o way_n broad_a that_o lead_v to_o destruction_n and_o many_o there_o be_v that_o enter_v at_o it_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o great_a wonder_n if_o error_n and_o sin_n have_v the_o great_a number_n 3._o and_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o i_o dare_v bold_o say_v that_o there_o be_v a_o far_o more_o excellent_a unity_n and_o concord_n among_o the_o true_a reform_a catholic_n then_o among_o the_o papist_n and_o that_o they_o do_v but_o cheat_v poor_a soul_n with_o the_o false_a pretence_n of_o unity_n and_o this_o i_o shall_v make_v appear_v to_o you_o as_o follow_v 1._o as_o i_o have_v say_v before_o they_o be_v utter_o divide_v and_o disagree_v about_o that_o very_a power_n in_o which_o they_o shall_v unite_v and_o which_o they_o pretend_v must_v agree_v they_o in_o all_o other_o thing_n one_o half_n of_o they_o be_v for_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o a_o pope_n and_o the_o other_o of_o a_o general_n council_n and_o that_o as_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o possibility_n of_o union_n with_o they_o that_o be_v divide_v in_o the_o very_a point_n in_o which_o they_o invite_v we_o to_o unite_n with_o they_o if_o the_o eye_n be_v dark_a how_o shall_v the_o body_n see_v if_o they_o can_v agree_v about_o that_o power_n that_o they_o say_v must_v agree_v they_o in_o all_o thing_n else_o what_o hope_v of_o a_o agreement_n with_o they_o but_o for_o our_o part_n we_o be_v all_o agree_v that_o christ_n only_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o he_o we_o all_o unite_v 2._o with_o we_o they_o be_v usual_o but_o here_o and_o there_o a_o straggle_a person_n or_o some_o few_o half-witted_a self-conceited_a novice_n that_o fall_v off_o and_o disagree_v from_o we_o in_o any_o thing_n that_o destroy_v salvation_n but_o with_o the_o papist_n prince_n be_v against_o prince_n and_o nation_n against_o nation_n and_o which_o be_v much_o more_o general_a council_n against_o general_a council_n even_o in_o the_o foundation_n of_o their_o faith_n so_o that_o let_v the_o general_a council_n be_v never_o so_o full_a and_o learned_a and_o just_o call_v yet_o if_o they_o be_v against_o the_o pope_n sovereignty_n over_o they_o the_o other_o party_n call_v they_o but_o conciliabula_fw-la false_a council_n and_o conventicle_n of_o how_o great_a moment_n this_o difference_n be_v let_v the_o learned_a cajetane_a be_v a_o witness_n who_o in_o his_o oration_n in_o the_o council_n at_o the_o lateran_n under_o leo_n 10._o inveigh_v against_o the_o council_n at_o pisa_n constance_n and_o basil_n make_v one_o to_o be_v babel_n and_o the_o other_o jerusalem_n 3._o as_o i_o prove_v before_o the_o papist_n be_v divide_v into_o two_o several_a pretend_a catholic_n church_n by_o make_v themselves_o two_o sovereign_n but_o so_o be_v not_o we_o for_o
we_o have_v but_o one_o head_n jesus_n christ_n that_o they_o be_v two_o church_n beside_o what_o be_v say_v hear_v the_o word_n of_o cajetane_a in_o the_o foresay_a oration_n in_o bin._n p._n 552._o this_o novelty_n of_o pisa_n spring_v up_o at_o constance_n and_o vanish_v at_o basil_n it_o spring_v up_o again_o and_o be_v explode_v and_o if_o you_o be_v man_n it_o will_v n●w_v also_o be_v repress_v as_o it_o be_v under_o eugenius_n the_o four_o for_o it_o come_v not_o from_o heaven_n and_o therefore_o will_v not_o be_v last_v nor_o do_v it_o embrace_v the_o principality_n of_o that_o one_o who_o be_v in_o the_o church_n triumphant_a and_o preserve_v the_o church_n militant_a and_o which_o the_o synod_n of_o pisa_n ought_v to_o embrace_v if_o it_o come_v from_o heaven_n and_o not_o as_o it_o do_v to_o rely_v on_o the_o government_n of_o a_o multitude_n the_o church_n of_o the_o pisans_n therefore_o do_v far_o differ_v from_o this_o church_n of_o christ_n for_o one_o be_v the_o church_n of_o believer_n the_o other_o of_o caviller_n one_o of_o the_o household_n of_o god_n the_o other_o of_o the_o errone_n we_o one_o be_v the_o church_n of_o christian_n man_n the_o other_o of_o such_o as_o fear_v not_o to_o tear_v the_o coat_n of_o christ_n and_o divide_v the_o mystical_a member_n of_o christ_n from_o his_o mystical_a body_n this_o be_v speak_v in_o council_n with_o applause_n and_o can_v there_o yet_o be_v great_a division_n than_o these_o 4._o they_o have_v be_v utter_o divide_v about_o the_o very_a power_n of_o choose_v their_o pope_n in_o who_o they_o must_v unite_v in_o one_o age_n the_o people_n choose_v he_o in_o another_o the_o clergy_n choose_v he_o sometime_o both_o together_o for_o a_o long_a time_n the_o emperor_n choose_v he_o at_o last_o only_o the_o cardinal_n choose_v he_o and_o sometime_o a_o general_n council_n have_v choose_v he_o our_o catholic_n church_n have_v no_o such_o uncertain_a head_n but_o one_o that_o be_v the_o same_o yesterday_o to_o day_n and_o for_o ever_o 5._o they_o have_v often_o have_v two_o or_o three_o pope_n at_o once_o and_o one_o part_n of_o the_o church_n have_v follow_v one_o and_o another_o the_o other_o yea_o as_o be_v say_v for_o forty_o year_n together_o none_o know_v the_o true_a pope_n say_v cajetane_v ubi_fw-la sup_n of_o the_o schism_n of_o that_o time_n there_o be_v three_o so_o account_v pope_n that_o none_o of_o they_o may_v be_v esteem_v the_o successor_n of_o peter_n either_o certain_a or_o without_o ambiguity_n for_o many_o age_n one_o part_n have_v be_v run_v after_o one_o and_o the_o other_o after_o the_o other_o or_o strive_v about_o they_o but_o we_o be_v all_o agree_v in_o our_o head_n without_o controversy_n 6._o they_o have_v kill_v multitude_n of_o person_n in_o their_o division_n about_o the_o choice_n of_o their_o pope_n as_o in_o damasus_n choice_n and_o they_o have_v have_v many_o bloody_a war_n to_o the_o divide_v of_o the_o church_n about_o their_o pope_n and_o between_o pope_n and_o pope_n this_o be_v their_o unity_n it_o will_v make_v a_o christian_a ashamed_a and_o grieve_v to_o read_v of_o the_o lamentable_a war_n and_o division_n of_o christendom_n either_o between_o or_o about_o their_o pope_n 7._o their_o pope_n and_o christian_a emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n have_v be_v in_o yet_o long_o and_o more_o grievous_a war_n 8._o they_o have_v set_v prince_n against_o prince_n and_o nation_n against_o nation_n in_o war_n about_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o pope_n for_o many_o age_n together_o and_o it_o be_v too_o seldom_o otherwise_o 9_o they_o have_v set_v king_n and_o their_o own_o subject_n together_o in_o war_n as_o england_z and_o almost_o all_o christendom_n have_v know_v by_o sad_a experience_n 10._o they_o have_v excommunicate_v prince_n and_o encourage_v their_o subject_n to_o expel_v they_o and_o to_o murder_v they_o hence_o be_v the_o inhuman_a murder_n of_o henry_n the_o three_o and_o henry_n the_o four_o king_n of_o france_n and_o the_o powder_n plot_n and_o may_v treason_n in_o england_n this_o be_v their_o unity_n 11._o they_o centre_n and_o unite_v the_o church_n in_o a_o impotent_a insufficient_a head_n that_o be_v not_o able_a to_o do_v the_o office_n of_o a_o head_n to_o the_o hundred_o part_n of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o can_v possible_o preserve_v unity_n but_o our_o head_n be_v all-sufficient_a 12._o they_o set_v up_o not_o only_o a_o controvert_v head_n which_o all_o the_o church_n never_o agree_v to_o nor_o ever_o will_v do_v but_o also_o a_o false_a usurp_a head_n which_o the_o church_n dare_v not_o and_o ought_v not_o to_o unite_v in_o whereas_o jesus_n christ_n be_v beyond_o controversy_n the_o just_a and_o lawful_a head_n of_o the_o church_n 13._o your_o agreement_n and_o unity_n be_v with_o none_o but_o your_o own_o sect_n and_o be_v this_o so_o great_a a_o matter_n to_o boast_v off_o you_o divide_v yourselves_o from_o most_o of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o cast_v they_o off_o as_o heretic_n or_o schismatic_n and_o then_o boast_v of_o a_o unity_n among_o yourselves_o and_o so_o may_v the_o quaker_n the_o anabaptist_n the_o socinian_o as_o well_o as_o you_o or_o if_o you_o magnify_v your_o unity_n from_o the_o greatness_n of_o your_o number_n that_o agree_v the_o greek_a church_n also_o be_v numerous_a and_o yet_o in_o this_o we_o far_o exceed_v you_o for_o the_o true_a catholic_n be_v in_o union_n with_o all_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n we_o lay_v our_o unity_n on_o the_o essential_o of_o christianity_n and_o so_o be_v unite_v with_o all_o true_a christian_n in_o the_o world_n even_o with_o many_o of_o they_o that_o reproach_n we_o when_o you_o lay_v your_o unity_n on_o i_o know_v not_o how_o many_o doubtful_a point_n yea_o on_o you_o know_v not_o what_o yourselves_o can_v extend_v it_o no_o further_o then_o to_o your_o sect_n which_o be_v the_o more_o notable_a and_o glorious_a unity_n to_o be_v unite_v to_o the_o true_o catholic_n body_n contain_v all_o true_a christian_n in_o the_o world_n or_o to_o be_v at_o unity_n with_o a_o sect_n which_o be_v the_o lesser_a and_o more_o corrupt_a part_n of_o the_o church_n 14._o with_o what_o face_n can_v papist_n glory_n in_o their_o unity_n that_o be_v the_o great_a divider_n of_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n who_o be_v it_o that_o condemn_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n and_o prosecute_v that_o condemnation_n with_o fire_n and_o sword_n or_o so_o much_o vehemence_n as_o the_o papist_n do_v when_o they_o have_v most_o audacious_o divide_v themselves_o from_o all_o other_o and_o arrogate_a the_o title_n of_o catholic_n to_o themselves_o they_o call_v this_o abominable_a schism_n by_o the_o name_n of_o unity_n if_o you_o say_v that_o the_o reformer_n have_v divide_v themselves_o from_o all_o other_o too_o i_o answer_v not_o as_o from_o heretic_n or_o no_o member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n with_o we_o as_o you_o do_v but_o only_o as_o from_o unsound_a mistake_a brethren_n and_o therefore_o proper_o we_o be_v not_o divide_v from_o they_o but_o only_o from_o their_o mistake_n we_o think_v it_o not_o lawful_a to_o join_v with_o the_o dear_a brethren_n in_o sin_v or_o in_o that_o worship_n by_o personal_a local_a communion_n where_o we_o can_v keep_v our_o innocency_n but_o yet_o we_o hold_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n with_o they_o in_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n and_o be_v one_o with_o they_o in_o all_o the_o substance_n of_o christianity_n and_o holy_a worship_n even_o where_o distance_n of_o place_n or_o circumstantial_a difference_n keep_v we_o from_o communion_n in_o the_o same_o assembly_n yet_o our_o several_a assembly_n have_v communion_n in_o faith_n and_o love_n and_o the_o substance_n of_o worship_n as_o to_o the_o kind_n so_o that_o our_o division_n from_o other_o christian_n be_v nothing_o to_o the_o papist_n 15._o but_o yet_o when_o any_o differ_v from_o we_o in_o any_o point_n essential_a to_o our_o religion_n that_o be_v to_o christianity_n they_o be_v none_o of_o we_o nor_o own_a by_o we_o and_o therefore_o you_o can_v say_v that_o we_o be_v at_o difference_n among_o ourselves_o because_o some_o apostate_n have_v fall_v off_o from_o we_o you_o will_v not_o allow_v we_o to_o say_v you_o have_v many_o sect_n because_o some_o of_o you_o have_v turn_v socinian_n or_o because_o thousand_o of_o you_o have_v turn_v to_o the_o reformer_n in_o the_o day_n of_o luther_n calvin_n etc._n etc._n and_o why_o then_o shall_v those_o sect_n be_v number_v with_o we_o that_o be_v not_o of_o we_o but_o go_v out_o from_o we_o if_o man_n turn_v infidel_n seeker_n quaker_n socinian_n etc._n etc._n they_o be_v not_o of_o we_o no_o more_o than_o of_o you_o if_o you_o say_v that_o we_o breed_v they_o i_o answer_v no_o more_o than_o you_o breed_v
we_o have_v your_o own_o confession_n i_o have_v elsewhere_o mention_v some_o canus_n loc._n theol._n lib._n 6._o cap._n 7._o fol._n 201._o say_v not_o only_o the_o greek_n but_o almost_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n have_v vehement_o fight_v to_o destroy_v the_o privilege_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o indeed_o they_o have_v on_o their_o side_n both_o the_o arm_n of_o emperor_n and_o the_o great_a number_n of_o church_n and_o yet_o they_o can_v never_o prevail_v to_o abrogate_v the_o power_n of_o the_o one_o pope_n of_o rome_n mark_n hear_v whether_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v then_o your_o subject_n when_o the_o great_a number_n of_o church_n and_o most_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o well_o as_o the_o greek_n be_v against_o you_o and_o vehement_o fight_v against_o your_o pretend_a privilege_n rainerius_n suppose_v contra_fw-la waldenses_n catal._n in_o bibliotheca_fw-la patrum_fw-la tom._n 4._o pag._n 773._o say_v the_o church_n of_o the_o armenian_n and_o ethiopian_n and_o indian_n and_o the_o rest_n which_o the_o apostle_n convert_v be_v not_o under_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n read_v and_o blush_v and_o call_v baronius_n a_o parasite_n what_o will_v you_o have_v true_a or_o plain_o and_o what_o controversy_n can_v there_o be_v where_o so_o many_o nation_n themselves_o be_v witness_n against_o you_o and_o you_o may_v conjecture_v at_o the_o number_n of_o those_o church_n by_o what_o a_o legate_n of_o the_o pope_n that_o live_v among_o they_o say_v of_o one_o corner_n of_o they_o jacob._n à_fw-it vitriaco_fw-it histor_n orient_n cap._n 77._o that_o the_o church_n in_o the_o easterly_a part_n of_o asia_n alone_o exceed_v in_o multitude_n the_o christian_n both_o of_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n alas_o how_o little_a a_o thing_n than_o be_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n if_o all_o this_o be_v not_o enough_o the_o tradition_n of_o your_o own_a catholic_n church_n be_v ready_a to_o destroy_v the_o papacy_n utter_o for_o that_o a_o general_n council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n and_o may_v judge_v he_o and_o depose_v he_o and_o that_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la and_o that_o its_o heresy_n to_o deny_v it_o and_o that_o all_o this_o be_v so_o jure_v that_o ne_fw-la unquam_fw-la aliquis_fw-la peritorum_fw-la dubitavit_fw-la no_o wise_a man_n ever_o doubt_v of_o it_o all_o this_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o general_n council_n of_o basil_n with_o who_o that_o of_o constance_n do_v agree_v and_o whether_o these_o council_n be_v confirm_v or_o not_o they_o confess_v they_o lawful_o call_v and_o own_v and_o extraordinary_a full_a and_o so_o they_o be_v their_o catholic_n church_n representative_a and_o so_o the_o pope_n sovereignty_n over_o the_o council_n be_v go_v by_o i_o radition_n but_o that_o be_v not_o the_o worst_a for_o if_o a_o free_a general_n council_n shall_v be_v call_v all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n must_v be_v equal_o there_o represent_v and_o if_o they_o be_v so_o then_o down_o go_v the_o usurp_a head-ship_n of_o the_o pope_n for_o we_o be_v sure_o already_o that_o most_o of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n be_v against_o it_o and_o therefore_o in_o council_n they_o will_v have_v the_o major_a vote_n and_o thus_o by_o the_o concession_n of_o the_o roman_a representative_a catholic_n church_n the_o pope_n be_v go_v by_o tradition_n so_o that_o by_o that_o time_n they_o have_v well_o consider_v of_o the_o matter_n i_o think_v they_o shall_v be_v less_o zealous_a for_o tradition_n chap._n xxi_o detect_v 12._o another_o of_o the_o roman_a fraud_n be_v this_o they_o persuade_v man_n that_o the_o greek_n the_o protestant_n and_o all_o other_o church_n be_v once_o under_o their_o papal_a sovereignty_n and_o have_v separate_v themselves_o without_o any_o just_a cause_n and_o therefore_o we_o be_v all_o schismatics_n and_o thereforefore_o have_v no_o vote_n in_o general_a council_n etc._n etc._n a_o few_o word_n may_v serve_v to_o show_v the_o vanity_n of_o this_o accusation_n 1._o abundance_n of_o the_o church_n be_v so_o strange_a to_o you_o that_o they_o have_v not_o any_o notable_a communion_n with_o you_o 2._o the_o greek_a church_n withdraw_v from_o your_o communion_n but_o not_o from_o your_o subjection_n if_o any_o of_o the_o patriarck_n or_o emperor_n of_o constantinople_n do_v for_o carnal_a end_n at_o last_o submit_v to_o you_o it_o be_v not_o till_o late_o nor_o be_v it_o the_o act_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o own_a nor_o of_o long_a continuance_n so_o that_o it_o be_v your_o communion_n and_o not_o your_o subjection_n that_o they_o withdraw_v from_o 2._o and_o as_o for_o we_o of_o the_o western_a part_n we_o answer_v you_o 1._o we_o that_o be_v now_o live_v our_o father_n or_o our_o grandfather_n be_v not_o of_o your_o church_n and_o therefore_o we_o never_o do_v withdraw_v 2._o there_o be_v church_n in_o england_n before_o the_o roman_a power_n be_v here_o own_v and_o therefore_o if_o it_o be_v a_o sin_n to_o change_v the_o first_o change_n be_v the_o sin_n when_o they_o subject_v themselves_o to_o you_o and_o not_o the_o late_a in_o which_o they_o return_v to_o their_o ancient_a state_n 3._o and_o for_o the_o german_n or_o english_a or_o whoever_o do_v relinquish_v you_o they_o have_v as_o good_a reason_n for_o it_o as_o for_o the_o relinquish_a of_o any_o other_o sin_n if_o they_o do_v by_o the_o unhappiness_n of_o ill_a education_n or_o delusion_n submit_v to_o the_o usurp_a sovereignty_n of_o the_o pope_n they_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o continue_v in_o such_o a_o error_n repentance_n be_v not_o a_o vice_n when_o the_o thing_n repent_v of_o be_v a_o vice_n justify_v therefore_o your_o usurpation_n or_o else_o it_o be_v in_o vain_a to_o be_v angry_a with_o we_o for_o not_o adhere_v to_o the_o usurper_n and_o the_o many_o corruption_n that_o he_o bring_v into_o the_o church_n chap._n xxii_o detect_v 13._o another_o deceit_n that_o they_o manage_v with_o great_a confidence_n be_v this_o say_v they_o if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o true_a church_n then_o you_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n and_o then_o you_o be_v shismaticks_n in_o separate_v from_o it_o but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o true_a church_n for_o you_o will_v confess_v it_o be_v once_o a_o true_a church_n when_o paul_n write_v the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n and_o if_o it_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o true_a church_n tell_v we_o when_o it_o cease_v if_o you_o can_v if_o it_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o true_a church_n it_o be_v either_o by_o heresy_n or_o schism_n or_o apostasy_n but_o by_o none_o of_o these_o therefore_o etc._n etc._n a_o man_n will_v think_v that_o child_n and_o woman_n shall_v see_v the_o palpable_a fallacy_n of_o this_o argument_n and_o yet_o i_o hear_v of_o few_o that_o the_o learned_a papist_n make_v more_o use_n of_o but_o to_o lay_v open_a the_o shame_n of_o it_o in_o brief_a i_o answer_v 1._o the_o deceit_n lie_v in_o the_o ambiguity_n of_o the_o word_n church_n as_o to_o our_o present_a purpose_n observe_v that_o it_o have_v these_o several_a signification_n 1._o it_o be_v take_v oft_o in_o scripture_n for_o one_o particular_a church_n associate_v for_o personal_a communon_n in_o god_n worship_n and_o thus_o there_o be_v many_o church_n in_o a_o country_n as_o judea_n galatia_n etc._n etc._n 2._o it_o be_v take_v by_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n often_o for_o a_o association_n of_o many_o of_o these_o church_n for_o communion_n by_o their_o pastor_n such_o as_o be_v diocesan_n provincial_a national_a church_n whereof_o most_o be_v then_o rule_v by_o assembly_n where_o a_o bishop_n archbishop_n metropolitan_a or_o patriarch_n as_o they_o call_v they_o do_v preside_v 3._o it_o be_v take_v oft_o in_o scripture_n for_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n the_o holy_a catholic_n or_o universal_a church_n contain_v all_o true_a believer_n as_o mystical_a or_o all_o professor_n of_o true_a faith_n as_o visible_a 4._o it_o be_v take_v by_o the_o papist_n oft_o for_o one_o particular_a church_n which_o be_v the_o mistress_n or_o ruler_n of_o all_o other_o church_n and_o now_o i_o come_v to_o apply_v these_o in_o answer_n to_o the_o argument_n 1._o if_o the_o question_n be_v of_o a_o true_a particular_a church_n we_o grant_v you_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o true_a and_o noble_a church_n in_o the_o day_n of_o paul_n and_o long_o after_o and_o thus_o paul_n ow_v it_o in_o his_o epistle_n as_o a_o true_a church_n and_o to_o the_o question_n when_o it_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o true_a church_n i_o answer_v 1._o what_o matter_n be_v it_o to_o we_o whether_o it_o be_v reason_v or_o not_o any_o more_o than_o whether_o corinth_n ephesus_n coloss_n thessalonica_n or_o jerusalem_n be_v true_a church_n or_o cease_v in_o charity_n we_o regard_v they_o all_o
do_v reject_v the_o chief_a of_o the_o popish_a error_n as_o we_o do_v beside_o many_o particular_a point_n name_v in_o my_o safe_a religion_n they_o reject_v with_o we_o the_o pope_n catholic_n monarchy_n the_o pretend_a infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o his_o council_n the_o new_a form_n of_o the_o papal_a catholic_n church_n as_o head_v by_o he_o with_o other_o such_o point_n which_o be_v the_o very_a fundamental_a controversy_n between_o we_o and_o the_o papist_n so_o that_o beside_o that_o the_o papist_n themselves_o profess_v our_o religion_n the_o major_a part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v profess_v it_o with_o the_o rejection_n of_o the_o papacy_n and_o papal_a church_n and_o so_o you_o may_v as_o easy_o see_v where_o our_o religion_n be_v before_o luther_n as_o where_o the_o catholic_n church_n or_o most_o of_o christian_n be_v before_o luther_n 3._o and_o beside_o both_o these_o our_o religion_n be_v profess_v with_o a_o yet_o great_a rejection_n of_o romish_a corruption_n by_o thousand_o and_o many_o thousand_o that_o live_v in_o the_o western_a church_n itself_o and_o under_o the_o pope_n nose_n and_o oppose_v he_o in_o many_o of_o his_o ill_a endeavour_n against_o the_o church_n and_o truth_n together_o with_o they_o that_o give_v he_o the_o hear_n and_o be_v glad_a to_o be_v quiet_a and_o give_v way_n to_o his_o tyranny_n but_o never_o consent_v to_o it_o concern_v these_o we_o have_v abundant_a evidence_n though_o abundance_n more_o we_o may_v have_v have_v if_o the_o power_n and_o subtlety_n of_o the_o papal_a faction_n have_v not_o have_v the_o handle_n of_o they_o 1._o we_o have_v abundance_n of_o history_n that_o tell_v we_o of_o the_o bloody_a war_n and_o contention_n that_o the_o emperor_n both_o of_o east_n and_o west_n have_v have_v with_o the_o pope_n to_o hinder_v his_o tyranny_n and_o that_o they_o be_v force_v by_o his_o power_n to_o submit_v to_o he_o contrary_a to_o their_o former_a free_a profession_n 2._o and_o we_o have_v abundance_n of_o treatise_n then_o write_v against_o he_o both_o for_o the_o emperor_n and_o prince_n and_o against_o his_o doctrine_n and_o tyranny_n some_o store_n of_o they_o goldastus_n have_v gather_v and_o intimation_n of_o more_o you_o have_v in_o their_o own_o expurgatory_n indices_fw-la 3._o and_o we_o have_v the_o history_n and_o profession_n of_o the_o albigenses_n waldenses_n bohemian_n and_o other_o that_o be_v very_o numerous_a and_o if_o raynerius_n say_v true_a they_o affirm_v about_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o one_o hundred_o that_o they_o have_v coutinue_v since_o the_o apostle_n and_o no_o other_o original_a of_o they_o be_v prove_v 4._o particular_a evidence_n unanswerable_a be_v give_v in_o by_o bishop_n Ê‹sher_n de_fw-fr success_n &_o statu_fw-la eccl._n and_o answer_n to_o the_o jesuit_n and_o the_o ancient_a religion_n of_o ireland_n and_o in_o dr._n field_n and_o morneye_n mystery_n of_o iniquity_n and_o of_o the_o church_n and_o illyricus_n and_o many_o other_o 5._o even_o general_n popish_a council_n have_v contend_v and_o bear_v witness_n against_o the_o pope_n superiority_n over_o a_o council_n 6._o and_o in_o that_o and_o other_o point_v whole_a country_n of_o their_o own_o be_v not_o yet_o bring_v over_o to_o the_o pope_n 7._o they_o have_v still_o among_o themselves_o dominican_n jansenist_n etc._n etc._n that_o be_v reproach_v by_o the_o jesuit_n as_o side_v with_o calvin_n in_o many_o controversy_n as_o catharinus_n and_o many_o more_o in_o other_o most_o point_n of_o we_o which_o we_o oppose_v to_o popery_n be_v maintain_v by_o some_o or_o other_o of_o they_o 8._o but_o the_o full_a evidence_n be_v the_o certain_a history_n or_o knowledge_n of_o of_o the_o case_n of_o the_o common_a people_n and_o clergy_n among_o they_o who_o be_v partly_o ignorant_a of_o the_o main_a matter_n in_o controversy_n between_o we_o as_o we_o see_v by_o experience_n of_o multitude_n for_o one_o to_o this_o day_n and_o be_v general_o keep_v under_o the_o fear_n of_o fire_n and_o sword_n and_o torment_n so_o that_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o case_n be_v this_o the_o roman_a bishop_n be_v aspire_v by_o degree_n to_o be_v archbishop_n and_o so_o to_o be_v patriarch_n and_o so_o to_o have_v the_o first_o seat_n and_o vote_n and_o to_o be_v call_v the_o chief_a bishop_n or_o patriarch_n and_o at_o last_o they_o make_v another_o thing_n of_o their_o office_n and_o claim_v about_o six_o hundred_o year_n or_o more_o after_o christ_n to_o be_v universal_a monarch_n or_o governor_n of_o all_o the_o church_n but_o though_o this_o claim_n be_v soon_o lay_v it_o be_v comparative_o but_o few_o even_o in_o the_o west_n that_o make_v it_o any_o article_n of_o their_o faith_n but_o multitude_n side_v with_o the_o prince_n that_o will_v have_v keep_v the_o pope_n low_o and_o the_o most_o of_o the_o people_n meddle_v not_o with_o the_o matter_n but_o yield_v to_o necessity_n and_o give_v place_n to_o violence_n except_o such_o as_o the_o albigenses_n bohemian_n wicklefist_n and_o the_o rest_n that_o more_o open_o oppose_v so_o that_o no_o man_n can_v judge_v of_o the_o multitude_n clear_o which_o side_n they_o be_v on_o be_v force_v by_o fire_n and_o sword_n and_o have_v not_o the_o freedom_n to_o profess_v their_o mind_n so_o that_o in_o sum_n our_o religion_n be_v at_o first_o with_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o apostolic_a church_n and_o for_o divers_a hundred_o year_n after_o it_o be_v with_o the_o universal_a christian_a church_n and_o since_o rome_n usurpation_n it_o be_v even_o with_o the_o romanist_n though_o abuse_v and_o with_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n that_o renounce_v popery_n then_o and_o so_o do_v now_o and_o also_o with_o the_o opposer_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o west_n under_o his_o own_o nose_n you_o see_v now_o what_o succession_n we_o plead_v and_o where_o our_o church_n and_o religion_n still_o be_v if_o any_o deny_v that_o we_o be_v of_o the_o same_o church_n and_o religion_n with_o the_o greek_n abassine_n and_o most_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n yea_o all_o that_o be_v true_o christian_a i_o easy_o prove_v it_o 1._o they_o that_o be_v christian_n join_v to_o christ_n the_o head_n be_v all_o of_o the_o same_o church_n and_o religion_n for_o none_o else_o be_v christian_n or_o unite_a to_o christ_n but_o the_o church_n which_o be_v his_o body_n but_o the_o sincere_a greek_n abassine_n etc._n etc._n and_o we_o be_v christian_n unite_v to_o christ_n the_o head_n therefore_o we_o be_v all_o of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o church_n and_o religion_n 2._o they_o that_o believe_v the_o same_o holy_a scripture_n and_o differ_v in_o no_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v of_o the_o same_o church_n and_o religion_n but_o so_o do_v both_o we_o and_o all_o true_a christian_n therefore_o we_o be_v all_o of_o one_o church_n and_o religion_n 3._o they_o that_o be_v true_o regenerate_v and_o justify_v hate_v all_o know_a sin_n long_v to_o be_v perfect_a love_v god_n above_o all_o and_o seek_v first_o his_o kingdom_n and_o righteousness_n and_o account_v all_o thing_n but_o as_o dung_n in_o comparison_n of_o christ_n these_o be_v all_o of_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n and_o the_o true_a christian_a religion_n but_o such_o be_v all_o that_o be_v sincere_a both_o of_o the_o greek_n abassine_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o reform_a church_n as_o we_o prove_v 1._o to_o other_o by_o our_o profession_n and_o practice_n by_o which_o only_o they_o be_v capable_a of_o judge_v of_o we_o 2._o to_o ourselves_o infallible_o against_o all_o the_o enemy_n of_o our_o salvation_n in_o hell_n or_o earth_n by_o the_o knowledge_n and_o acquaintance_n with_o our_o own_o heart_n and_o the_o experience_n of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n upon_o they_o all_o the_o jesuit_n in_o the_o world_n can_v persuade_v i_o that_o i_o love_v not_o god_n and_o hate_v not_o sin_n and_o prefer_v not_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n before_o all_o the_o world_n when_o i_o feel_v and_o know_v that_o i_o do_v till_o they_o can_v prove_v that_o they_o know_v my_o heart_n better_o than_o i_o do_v 4._o if_o christ_n consent_v to_o it_o and_o we_o consent_v to_o it_o than_o we_o be_v all_o that_o be_v sincere_a in_o their_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n and_o religion_n for_o if_o he_o consent_v and_o we_o consent_v who_o be_v there_o that_o be_v able_a to_o break_v the_o match_n but_o christ_n consent_v and_o we_o consent_v as_o we_o prove_v by_o part_n 1._o his_o consent_n be_v express_v in_o his_o gospel_n that_o whoever_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o whoever_o will_v may_v drink_v of_o the_o water_n of_o life_n free_o 2._o and_o our_o consent_n we_o open_o profess_v at_o baptism_n and_o have_v frequent_o renew_v and_o our_o own_o
a_o just_a reconciliation_n as_o man_n that_o be_v studious_a of_o peace_n may_v prosecute_v with_o hope_n of_o some_o success_n and_o because_o i_o have_v late_o meet_v with_o a_o paper_n call_v an_n explanation_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n belief_n etc._n etc._n which_o pretend_v to_o much_o moderation_n in_o divers_a point_n i_o purpose_v next_o to_o inquire_v whether_o it_o mean_v as_o it_o pretend_v that_o if_o it_o do_v we_o may_v give_v it_o welcome_n if_o not_o we_o may_v detect_v its_o fraud_n for_o as_o i_o shall_v much_o rejoice_v to_o hear_v of_o so_o much_o amendment_n of_o the_o roman_a belief_n which_o i_o think_v have_v be_v suppose_v by_o themselves_o to_o be_v incorrigible_a so_o i_o must_v confess_v that_o i_o be_o so_o much_o for_o plain_a and_o open_a deal_n that_o i_o think_v it_o my_o duty_n to_o help_v to_o bring_v their_o work_n into_o the_o light_n and_o try_v how_o they_o agree_v with_o the_o truth_n and_o among_o themselves_o that_o man_n may_v judge_v of_o they_o as_o they_o be_v finis_fw-la the_o second_o part_n prove_v that_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v not_o a_o political_a body_n head_v by_o any_o earthly_a sovereign_n nor_o any_o such_o unity_n to_o be_v desire_v or_o endeavour_v by_o any_o that_o will_v not_o blaspheme_n divide_v and_o destroy_v under_o the_o pretence_n of_o unity_n special_o direct_v against_o the_o sovereignty_n and_o necessity_n too_o of_o general_n coucnils_n to_o the_o follower_n of_o grotius_n and_o other_o of_o that_o party_n that_o at_o least_o will_v give_v they_o a_o part_n in_o the_o sovereignty_n with_o the_o pope_n and_o propound_v the_o true_a ground_n and_o mean_n of_o the_o church_n unity_n and_o peace_n by_o rich._n baxter_n london_n print_v by_o robert_n white_a for_o nevil_n simmons_n bookseller_n in_o kederminster_n anno_fw-la dom._n 1659._o quest_n whether_o the_o way_n to_o heal_v any_o division_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v by_o draw_v they_o all_o into_o one_o universal_a visible_a political_a body_n under_o one_o universal_a visible_a head_n or_o government_n or_o whether_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v a_o body_n so_o unite_v and_o govern_v neg._n chap._n i._n show_v the_o occasion_n and_o reason_n of_o this_o write_n especial_o as_o from_o the_o grotian_o which_o be_v vindicated_n from_o the_o frivolous_a exception_n of_o mr._n tho._n pierce_n i_o have_v already_o in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o book_n and_o former_o in_o another_o disprove_v the_o pope_n universal_a headship_n and_o answer_v what_o bellarmine_n boverius_n and_o some_o other_o say_v for_o the_o maintain_n of_o it_o and_o it_o be_v a_o work_n already_o do_v so_o full_o by_o chamier_n whitaker_n and_o many_o other_o but_o most_o triumphant_o and_o copious_o by_o david_n blondell_n in_o a_o french_a treatise_n in_o folio_n de_fw-la primatu_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la against_o cardinal_n perron_n that_o i_o need_v not_o and_o therefore_o intend_v not_o to_o say_v much_o here_o upon_o that_o subject_n but_o this_o disputation_n i_o principal_o intend_v 1._o for_o the_o subvert_v of_o the_o foundation_n of_o popery_n which_o be_v the_o supposition_n that_o the_o visible_a catholic_n church_n must_v needs_o be_v unite_v in_o some_o humane_a visible_a head_n 2._o to_o confute_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o moderate_a sort_n of_o french_a papist_n and_o grotian_o that_o take_v a_o general_n council_n to_o be_v the_o legislative_a head_n and_o the_o judicial_a head_n while_o they_o be_v in_o be_v and_o the_o pope_n rule_v by_o the_o law_n of_o council_n to_o be_v the_o ordinary_a judicial_a head_n 3._o to_o deliver_v some_o person_n from_o a_o dangerous_a temptation_n that_o by_o grotius_n or_o his_o follower_n here_o in_o england_n be_v draw_v into_o a_o conceit_n that_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v such_o a_o body_n as_o we_o here_o deny_v and_o think_v that_o the_o unity_n that_o the_o scripture_n so_o commend_v to_o we_o can_v be_v attain_v without_o a_o universal_a visible_a head_n which_o temptation_n of_o they_o be_v much_o increase_v by_o observe_v the_o difference_n of_o opinion_n in_o the_o world_n which_o every_o good_a man_n do_v lament_v as_o we_o do_v all_o the_o sin_n and_o frailty_n that_o on_o earth_n accompany_v we_o in_o the_o state_n of_o imperfection_n as_o i_o blame_v not_o those_o that_o desire_v perfect_a knowledge_n or_o holiness_n but_o blame_v they_o that_o promise_v it_o to_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n when_o it_o be_v the_o prerogative_n of_o heaven_n and_o much_o more_o shall_v blame_v he_o that_o will_v say_v we_o shall_v be_v perfect_o wise_a and_o holy_a if_o we_o will_v but_o be_v of_o this_o opinion_n that_o the_o church_n have_v a_o infallible_a humame_n head_n even_o so_o i_o blame_v not_o they_o that_o desire_v perfect_a concord_n the_o consequent_a of_o perfect_a knowledge_n and_o holiness_n for_o this_o be_v to_o desire_v heaven_n but_o i_o blame_v they_o that_o promise_v we_o this_o heaven_n on_o earth_n and_o they_o much_o more_o that_o tell_v we_o we_o shall_v have_v it_o if_o we_o will_v but_o believe_v that_o a_o pope_n or_o council_n be_v the_o universal_a head_n and_o so_o will_v condemn_v the_o church_n on_o earth_n because_o it_o have_v not_o attain_v that_o celestial_a perfection_n which_o they_o have_v once_o fancy_v that_o it_o may_v and_o shall_v attain_v concern_v grotius_n his_o opinion_n design_n and_o great_a endeavour_n to_o reduce_v the_o church_n to_o popery_n under_o the_o pretence_n of_o a_o conciliation_n i_o have_v late_o by_o the_o invitation_n of_o mr._n thomas_n pierce_v give_v in_o my_o evidence_n i_o think_v beyond_o all_o further_a question_n out_o of_o his_o own_o write_n in_o his_o frequent_a and_o express_v assertion_n and_o rivet_n in_o his_o dialysis_n and_o his_o apologet._n and_o other_o write_n have_v sufficient_o confute_v he_o the_o mistake_v of_o many_o in_o their_o judge_n of_o grotius_n be_v cause_v by_o their_o supposition_n that_o the_o man_n be_v the_o same_o in_o his_o first_o conciliatory_a enterprise_n and_o in_o his_o last_o which_o be_v not_o true_a he_o oft_o profess_v his_o mutation_n himself_o and_o how_o apt_a he_o be_v to_o dislike_v that_o which_o he_o have_v but_o late_o think_v or_o say_v at_o first_o he_o think_v out_o of_o reconcile_a the_o protestant_n among_o themselves_o but_o afterward_o his_o design_n be_v to_o reconcile_v they_o with_o the_o papist_n and_o that_o by_o draw_v they_o all_o to_o be_v papist_n that_o be_v to_o unite_v in_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n as_o the_o universal_a governor_n rule_v according_a to_o canon_n and_o decree_n and_o this_o he_o think_v be_v the_o only_a way_n to_o the_o union_n of_o the_o church_n the_o truth_n of_o this_o and_o the_o mischief_n of_o the_o enterprise_n must_v be_v apprehend_v by_o he_o that_o will_v understand_v my_o endeavour_n in_o this_o dispute_n and_o escape_v the_o snare_n that_o be_v lay_v for_o their_o perversion_n and_o for_o the_o truth_n of_o it_o i_o refer_v you_o to_o my_o foresay_a writing_n of_o the_o grotian_n religion_n since_o which_o it_o please_v mr._n pierce_v to_o publish_v a_o sheet_n contain_v not_o any_o thing_n that_o have_v the_o least_o aptitude_n to_o persuade_v a_o rational_a man_n that_o grotianism_n be_v not_o popery_n but_o some_o reason_n why_o he_o do_v not_o at_o least_o as_o yet_o perform_v the_o vindication_n with_o a_o general_n profession_n how_o easy_o he_o can_v do_v it_o and_o make_v i_o a_o wind_a sheet_n at_o least_o as_o suitable_a as_o that_o which_o i_o make_v for_o popery_n which_o when_o he_o have_v confute_v i_o shall_v better_o know_v his_o mind_n and_o strength_n this_o with_o two_o or_o three_o frivolous_a exception_n and_o many_o swell_a word_n of_o vanity_n with_o certain_a squib_n and_o empty_a jeer_n according_a to_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o man_n be_v the_o matter_n of_o his_o advertisement_n nothing_o can_v have_v be_v easy_a for_o he_o then_o to_o say_v or_o almost_o to_o say_v that_o i_o be_o very_o liable_a in_o every_o line_n and_o that_o his_o advantage_n be_v too_o many_o and_o that_o i_o be_o a_o advocate_n for_o the_o crimson_a sin_n of_o other_o and_o a_o encomiast_n of_o my_o own_o nothing_o more_o vain_a than_o his_o ostentation_n of_o the_o mild_a discharge_n of_o his_o censorship_n and_o his_o senseless_a intimation_n that_o i_o take_v the_o virtue_n of_o episcopal_a divine_n for_o glitter_a sin_n when_o he_o never_o have_v a_o word_n from_o i_o of_o such_o a_o sense_n or_o tendency_n but_o grotian_n will_v now_o be_v but_o episcopal_a divine_n and_o their_o glitter_a sin_n must_v be_v their_o virtue_n because_o i_o have_v acknowledge_v how_o civil_o he_o deal_v with_o i_o no_o doubt_n on_o a_o supposition_n that_o i_o be_v near_o his_o conceit_n then_o those_o that_o he_o have_v so_o copious_o reproach_v he_o take_v it_o
from_o or_o disobey_v the_o uncharitable_a clergy_n but_o he_o be_v stigmatise_v for_o a_o heretic_n and_o charge_v with_o almost_o as_o much_o wickedness_n as_o their_o mouth_n be_v wide_a enough_o to_o utter_v and_o the_o ear_n of_o other_o man_n to_o hear_v what_o horrid_a thing_n have_v they_o speak_v of_o the_o poor_a waldenses_n and_o albigenses_n and_o bohemian_n of_o luther_n oecolampadius_n calvin_n and_o who_o not_o though_o i_o have_v have_v applaud_v flatter_a letter_n from_o some_o of_o they_o that_o try_v whether_o i_o be_v flexible_a and_o ductile_a yet_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o i_o shall_v have_v my_o share_n myself_o before_o they_o have_v do_v with_o i_o &_o i_o wonder_v i_o hear_v not_o of_o it_o before_o now_o hence_o among_o other_o reason_n its_o like_a that_o mr._n pierce_n become_v so_o destitute_a of_o charity_n as_o to_o disgorge_v his_o sell_v of_o so_o many_o bitter_a reproach_n and_o calumny_n against_o the_o puritan_n and_o presbyterian_o who_o if_o he_o know_v not_o he_o sin_v but_o as_o paul_n do_v but_o if_o he_o know_v he_o terrify_v we_o from_o his_o principle_n by_o the_o fruit_n that_o which_o show_v the_o want_n of_o charity_n show_v the_o want_n of_o save_a grace_n and_o consequent_o the_o want_n of_o right_a to_o glory_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o great_a schismatic_n be_v the_o common_a accuser_n of_o their_o brethren_n with_o schism_n pharisaical_o say_v i_o thank_v thou_o lord_n that_o i_o be_o not_o as_o other_o man_n nor_o as_o these_o schismatic_n hence_o also_o it_o be_v that_o so_o many_o learned_a well-meaning_a papist_n do_v so_o pervert_v their_o study_n and_o endeavour_n and_o abuse_v and_o lose_v and_o worse_o than_o lose_v their_o wit_n and_o part_n to_o draw_v man_n to_o their_o way_n compass_v sea_n and_o land_n to_o make_v a_o romish_a proselyte_n especial_o of_o a_o prince_n or_o man_n of_o power_n interest_n or_o ability_n to_o serve_v they_o what_o pain_n take_v they_o to_o draw_v nation_n to_o their_o mind_n and_o to_o embroil_v the_o world_n in_o contention_n and_o confusion_n to_o attain_v their_o end_n what_o horrid_a persecution_n massacre_n and_o barbarous_a inhuman_a cruelty_n have_v multitude_n of_o man_n of_o learning_n and_o good_a part_n and_o nature_n be_v engage_v in_o by_o the_o very_a principle_n that_o i_o now_o confute_v and_o for_o the_o promote_a of_o their_o kind_n of_o unity_n and_o concord_n in_o wicked_a and_o impossible_a way_n 7._o beside_o this_o it_o take_v man_n off_o from_o seek_v the_o true_a peace_n of_o the_o hurch_n while_o they_o mistake_o pursue_v a_o false_a peace_n the_o devil_n the_o cunning_a enemy_n of_o concord_n have_v not_o a_o more_o effectual_a way_n to_o take_v man_n off_o from_o the_o way_n and_o mean_n of_o holy_a concord_n then_o by_o start_v they_o a_o false_a game_n and_o cause_v they_o to_o lay_v out_o all_o their_o labour_n to_o build_v a_o babel_n when_o they_o shall_v be_v building_n zion_n oh_o what_o a_o bless_a state_n may_v the_o church_n be_v in_o if_o all_o the_o jesuit_n friar_n prelate_n priest_n and_o other_o have_v lay_v out_o that_o labour_n for_o a_o righteous_a possible_a unity_n and_o peace_n in_o god_n appoint_a way_n which_o they_o have_v vain_o and_o impious_o lay_v out_o to_o unite_v the_o world_n in_o a_o vice-christ_n or_o vicegod_n before_o see_v and_o at_o present_a feeling_n many_o of_o these_o calamitous_a consequence_n to_o the_o church_n i_o think_v it_o of_o exceed_a moment_n that_o man_n judgement_n shall_v be_v rectify_v that_o be_v mislead_v concern_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n still_o profess_v that_o to_o i_o they_o be_v the_o dear_a christian_n and_o near_o to_o my_o heart_n that_o be_v most_o for_o unity_n and_o concord_n so_o it_o be_v in_o christ_n and_o upon_o righteous_a possible_a condition_n chap._n ii_o the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o controversy_n and_o how_o much_o we_o grant_v have_v give_v you_o a_o account_n of_o the_o occasion_n and_o motive_n that_o produce_v this_o disputation_n i_o shall_v now_o brief_o state_n the_o controversy_n between_o we_o and_o because_o the_o term_n be_v all_o plain_a and_o my_o sense_n of_o they_o explain_v in_o the_o foregoing_a part_n i_o shall_v think_v no_o more_o here_o necessary_a then_o to_o tell_v you_o in_o certain_a proposition_n how_o much_o we_o grant_v and_o how_o far_o we_o be_v agree_v and_o then_o to_o tell_v you_o what_o it_o be_v that_o we_o deny_v and_o wherein_o we_o differ_v prop._n 1._o we_o be_v agree_v that_o christ_n have_v a_o true_a catholic_n church_n on_o earth_n and_o ever_o have_v have_v since_o first_o he_o plant_v it_o and_o ever_o will_v have_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o or_o have_v it_o ever_o have_v a_o intercision_n for_o a_o day_n or_o a_o hour_n and_o that_o this_o church_n be_v so_o far_o infallible_a as_o that_o it_o never_o be_v nor_o ever_o will_v be_v ignorant_a of_o or_o erroneous_a against_o any_o article_n of_o faith_n or_o part_n of_o obedience_n that_o be_v of_o absolute_a necessity_n to_o salvation_n otherwise_o by_o that_o error_n it_o shall_v have_v cease_v to_o be_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n prop._n 2._o we_o be_v agree_v that_o this_o catholic_n church_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o internal_a faith_n and_o charity_n of_o the_o member_n and_o their_o communion_n with_o christ_n by_o the_o quicken_a spirit_n on_o his_o part_n and_o holy_a sincere_a return_n of_o devotion_n on_o they_o may_v be_v call_v mystical_a or_o invisible_a the_o thing_n be_v utter_o undeniable_a though_o some_o papist_n in_o the_o perverseness_n of_o contentious_a disputation_n seem_v to_o deny_v it_o and_o doubtless_o when_o they_o assert_v that_o christ_n have_v no_o invisible_a church_n they_o must_v mean_v it_o simple_o and_o not_o quoad_fw-la haeo_fw-la interiora_fw-la or_o else_o they_o speak_v against_o all_o sense_n and_o reason_n no_o man_n be_v simple_o invisible_a but_o every_o man_n as_o to_o his_o soul_n be_v invisible_a prop._n 3._o we_o be_v agree_v that_o this_o catholic_n church_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o outward_a profession_n of_o this_o inward_a faith_n and_o holiness_n and_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o discernible_a number_n of_o person_n make_v this_o profession_n have_v ever_o be_v visible_a since_o first_o it_o begin_v to_o be_v visible_a and_o that_o the_o visibility_n have_v never_o have_v any_o intercision_n if_o some_o protestanss_n say_v otherwise_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o this_o be_v all_o that_o by_o the_o common_a judgement_n of_o protestant_n be_v maintain_v viz._n that_o christian_n and_o the_o catholic_n church_n contain_v the_o profess_v christian_n through_o the_o world_n have_v ever_o since_o their_o first_o plant_n have_v a_o visible_a be_v but_o yet_o 1._o that_o the_o visibility_n be_v not_o such_o but_o that_o heretic_n as_o the_o arrian_n do_v may_v make_v a_o controversy_n of_o it_o whether_o they_o or_o the_o true_a christian_n be_v the_o church_n indeed_o and_o by_o their_o great_a number_n or_o power_n may_v blind_v man_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o see_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n 2._o and_o that_o in_o the_o catholic_n church_n some_o part_n may_v be_v much_o more_o corrupt_a and_o other_o much_o more_o pure_a and_o the_o pure_a part_n be_v so_o much_o the_o lesser_a and_o oppress_v and_o vilify_v by_o the_o more_o corrupt_a that_o the_o most_o part_n shall_v not_o discern_v their_o purity_n but_o take_v they_o as_o they_o do_v the_o waldenses_n for_o heretic_n 3._o and_o that_o two_o part_n or_o more_o of_o this_o catholic_n church_n may_v so_o fall_v out_o among_o themselves_o as_o that_o one_o of_o they_o shall_v deny_v the_o other_o to_o be_v part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n when_o yet_o they_o real_o for_o all_o that_o censure_v remain_v part_n of_o it_o as_o much_o as_o they_o and_o hereupon_o may_v grow_v a_o contest_v between_o they_o which_o of_o the_o two_o be_v the_o true_a catholic_n church_n and_o one_o part_n may_v say_v it_o be_v we_o and_o not_o you_o and_o the_o other_o may_v say_v it_o be_v we_o and_o not_o you_o and_o no_o man_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o discern_v which_o of_o the_o two_o be_v the_o catholic_n church_n because_o it_o be_v neither_o of_o they_o but_o each_o be_v a_o part_n 4._o and_o though_o the_o body_n of_o the_o member_n be_v visible_a and_o their_o worship_a action_n visible_a and_o their_o profession_n audible_a yet_o the_o faith_n profess_v be_v not_o visible_a nor_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o profession_n or_o of_o their_o christianity_n or_o church_n truth_n be_v the_o object_n of_o the_o intellect_n and_o not_o of_o sense_n 5._o and_o though_o the_o true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n do_v know_v the_o true_a church_n
the_o sovereign_n or_o chief_a governor_n of_o itself_o or_o the_o church_n representative_a of_o the_o church_n real_a as_o they_o use_v to_o call_v they_o as_o to_o they_o that_o head_n it_o with_o the_o pope_n i_o have_v say_v enough_o already_o and_o other_o much_o more_o especial_o blondell_n unanswerable_o yet_o i_o shall_v partly_o take_v they_o also_o in_o my_o way_n though_o i_o deal_v principal_o with_o the_o other_o and_o these_o brief_a argument_n may_v serve_v to_o confute_v the_o vice-christship_a or_o sovereignty_n of_o the_o pope_n 1._o there_o be_v no_o such_o head_n institute_v by_o christ_n the_o scripture_n pretence_n for_o it_o i_o have_v before_o confute_v and_o they_o be_v so_o poor_a that_o they_o vanish_v of_o themselves_o 2._o the_o pope_n sovereignty_n be_v against_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o practice_v of_o the_o primitive_a church_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v in_o this_o and_o a_o former_a book_n 3._o it_o be_v against_o tradition_n as_o bring_v down_o to_o we_o by_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n by_o far_o as_o be_v before_o prove_v 4._o it_o be_v against_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o present_a catholic_n church_n as_o be_v prove_v 5._o it_o be_v the_o the_o mere_a effect_n of_o pride_n and_o tyranny_n a_o plain_a design_n to_o set_v up_o one_o man_n over_o all_o the_o world_n for_o his_o greatness_n and_o their_o hurt_n 6._o the_o pretence_n of_o this_o sovereignty_n be_v the_o consequent_a only_o of_o rome_n greatness_n and_o the_o will_n of_o emperor_n that_o to_o conform_v the_o ecclesiastical_a state_n to_o the_o civil_a do_v give_v a_o primacy_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n within_o the_o empire_n 7._o it_o be_v a_o mere_a impossibility_n for_o one_o man_n to_o be_v the_o sovereign_n of_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n and_o do_v the_o work_n of_o a_o sovereign_n for_o they_o he_o have_v need_n of_o many_o million_o and_o million_o of_o treasure_n to_o defray_v the_o charge_n which_o peter_n have_v not_o while_o he_o pretend_v to_o govern_v all_o the_o world_n he_o do_v but_o leave_v they_o ungoverned_a or_o not_o by_o he_o how_o can_v he_o govern_v all_o those_o church_n in_o the_o dominion_n of_o infidel_n that_o will_v not_o endure_v his_o government_n there_o be_v more_o than_o all_o the_o papist_n in_o the_o world_n now_o from_o under_o his_o government_n voluntary_o that_o can_v not_o be_v govern_v by_o he_o if_o they_o will_v 8._o there_o be_v yet_o visible_a many_o great_a church_n that_o be_v plant_v by_o the_o apostle_n or_o in_o their_o day_n and_o never_o be_v under_o rome_n sovereignty_n to_o this_o day_n as_o the_o aetheopians_n persian_n indian_n and_o most_o that_o be_v without_o the_o verge_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n 9_o there_o be_v no_o use_n for_o such_o a_o head_n as_o i_o shall_v show_v anon_o of_o council_n 10._o there_o be_v not_o so_o much_o reason_n for_o it_o or_o possibility_n of_o it_o as_o that_o one_o man_n must_v be_v king_n or_o monarch_n of_o all_o the_o world_n consider_v that_o spiritual_a government_n require_v residency_n and_o can_v less_o be_v do_v by_o deputy_n then_o temporal_a and_o that_o prince_n be_v true_o church-governor_n also_o in_o their_o kind_n and_o way_n 11._o it_o be_v a_o intolerable_a usurpation_n of_o the_o power_n of_o all_o christian_a prince_n and_o pastor_n who_o conjunct_o in_o their_o several_a way_n be_v entrust_v by_o god_n with_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n under_o they_o 12._o to_o make_v such_o a_o sovereign_n be_v to_o make_v a_o new_a catholic_n church_n that_o christ_n never_o make_v 13._o and_o it_o be_v the_o most_o notorious_a schism_n divide_v themselves_o from_o all_o the_o catholic_n church_n that_o be_v not_o their_o subject_n 14._o and_o inhuman_a cruelty_n to_o damn_v all_o as_o much_o as_o heathen_n at_o least_o that_o believe_v not_o in_o the_o pope_n be_v they_o never_o so_o holy_a 15._o to_o set_v up_o a_o vicegod_n as_o pope_n julius_n paraphrastical_o call_v himself_o and_o a_o vice_n christ_n on_o earth_n over_o all_o the_o church_n as_o the_o papist_n common_o do_v maintain_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o set_v up_o a_o idol_n and_o a_o name_n of_o blasphemy_n against_o jesus_n christ_n who_o prerogative_n it_o be_v to_o be_v the_o sole_a universal_a head_n and_o therefore_o he_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o antichrist_n whether_o he_o be_v the_o antichrist_n or_o not_o this_o much_o to_o the_o pope_n thes_n the_o catholic_n church_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o one_o visible_a political_a plenipotentiary_n body_n as_o join_v to_o one_o universal_a visible_a head_n or_o sovereign_n save_o only_a christ_n and_o consequent_o it_o be_v not_o the_o way_n to_o heal_v the_o church_n division_n to_o draw_v all_o into_o such_o a_o body_n or_o endeavour_v such_o a_o union_n this_o i_o make_v good_a by_o these_o follow_a argument_n which_o reach_v both_o the_o italian_a papist_n that_o will_v have_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v the_o head_n or_o sovereign_n and_o the_o french_a and_o cassandrian_a who_o will_v have_v a_o general_n council_n to_o be_v the_o head_n and_o the_o pope_n only_o to_o be_v the_o chief_a patriarch_n and_o the_o principium_fw-la unitatis_fw-la for_o if_o i_o prove_v that_o the_o body_n be_v not_o one_o as_o head_v by_o any_o except_o christ_n i_o shall_v say_v enough_o against_o both_o these_o opinion_n but_o yet_o as_o be_v say_v it_o be_v principal_o against_o the_o late_a who_o be_v for_o the_o headship_n of_o a_o council_n that_o i_o shall_v direct_v my_o argument_n because_o they_o be_v the_o busy_a reconciler_n and_o because_o the_o rest_n be_v so_o large_o confute_v already_o on_o both_o side_n argument_n 1._o that_o which_o be_v the_o true_a form_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o christ_n it_o retain_v de_fw-la facto_fw-la at_o this_o day_n but_o it_o retain_v not_o a_o political_a union_n under_o a_o visible_a terrestrial_a universal_a head_n therefore_o this_o be_v not_o the_o true_a form_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n or_o what_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v quoad_fw-la essentiam_fw-la that_o it_o be_v also_o quoad_fw-la existentiam_fw-la but_o it_o be_v not_o such_o a_o body_n quoad_fw-la existentiam_fw-la therefore_o not_o quoad_fw-la essentiam_fw-la if_o any_o will_v grant_v the_o conclusion_n quoad_fw-la essentiam_fw-la vel_fw-la formam_fw-la and_o say_v that_o this_o policy_n head_n and_o union_n be_v not_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n but_o separable_a accident_n tend_v only_a ad_fw-la melius_fw-la esse_fw-la he_o will_v give_v away_o his_o cause_n for_o the_o pars_fw-la imperans_fw-la and_o pars_fw-la subdita_fw-la be_v the_o two_o essential_a part_n of_o a_o body_n politic_a or_o republic_n whether_o civil_a or_o ecclesiastical_a as_o a_o soul_n and_o body_n be_v the_o part_n of_o man_n and_o if_o it_o want_v either_o part_n the_o essence_n be_v destroy_v it_o have_v lose_v its_o political_a form_n but_o i_o need_v not_o stand_v on_o this_o because_o the_o case_n be_v past_a controversy_n and_o i_o know_v not_o of_o any_o that_o make_v the_o objection_n or_o will_v go_v on_o such_o term_n i_o be_o sure_a those_o do_v not_o that_o i_o have_v now_o to_o deal_v with_o another_o thing_n there_o may_v be_v that_o be_v call_v a_o church_n without_o this_o form_n or_o head_n but_o not_o this_o same_o thing_n or_o body_n that_o now_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o major_a proposition_n i_o prove_v thus_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o true_a church_n at_o this_o day_n or_o retain_v its_o essential_a part_n therefore_o it_o retain_v its_o form_n if_o its_o essential_o be_v not_o in_o existence_n the_o church_n be_v extinct_a or_o do_v not_o exist_v but_o that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o extinct_a or_o null_v the_o opponent_n will_v easy_o grant_v and_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n will_v easy_o prove_v the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o the_o minor_a i_o prove_v thus_o if_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v now_o head_v with_o one_o visible_a head_n beside_o christ_n than_o it_o be_v either_o the_o pope_n or_o a_o general_n council_n but_o it_o be_v neither_o of_o these_o that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o pope_n the_o french_a will_v grant_v and_o 1._o it_o be_v prove_v at_o large_a by_o many_o a_o volume_n of_o protestant_a writer_n and_o 2._o by_o the_o present_a visible_a state_n of_o the_o church_n the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n and_o all_o those_o in_o heaven_n disow_v the_o universal_a sovereignty_n or_o headship_n of_o the_o pope_n the_o greek_n abassine_n armenian_n protestant_n etc._n etc._n that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o general_n council_n appear_v in_o that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n in_o natural_a or_o moral_a existence_n not_o in_o
council_n be_v unjust_a because_o there_o can_v be_v no_o just_a satisfaction_n give_v by_o man_n that_o live_v at_o so_o vast_a a_o distance_n that_o this_o great_a number_n that_o come_v thither_o be_v true_o bishop_n yea_o or_o presbyter_n either_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a under_o many_o year_n time_n so_o much_o as_o to_o take_v any_o satisfactory_a account_n of_o their_o ordination_n and_o abide_v in_o that_o office_n and_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o deputation_n or_o election_n and_o when_o in_o their_o elect_a representative_a council_n there_o will_v be_v perpetual_a controversy_n between_o several_a party_n as_o there_o be_v in_o parliament_n whether_o it_o be_v this_o man_n or_o that_o which_o be_v true_o elect_v in_o how_o many_o year_n will_v all_o these_o be_v decide_v before_o they_o begin_v their_o work_n so_o that_o i_o may_v well_o conclude_v lay_v all_o these_o seven_o consideration_n together_o the_o distance_n of_o place_n the_o age_n and_o state_n of_o the_o bishop_n the_o state_n of_o the_o civil_a government_n which_o they_o live_v under_o their_o necessary_a labour_n at_o home_n and_o the_o ruin_n that_o will_v befall_v their_o church_n by_o so_o much_o absence_n the_o diversity_n of_o their_o language_n the_o multitude_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o difficulty_n of_o know_v the_o ordination_n and_o qualification_n of_o person_n so_o remote_a to_o prove_v their_o capacity_n i_o say_v all_o these_o together_o do_v plain_o show_v that_o such_o general_a council_n be_v impossible_a and_o unjust_a and_o therefore_o not_o the_o stand_a government_n or_o form_n of_o the_o church_n or_o the_o centre_n of_o its_o unity_n argum._n 4._o as_o the_o synod_n itself_o be_v impossible_a needless_a and_o unjust_a so_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o they_o shall_v do_v the_o work_n of_o a_o head_n or_o sovereign_a power_n if_o they_o can_v assemble_v therefore_o they_o be_v not_o appoint_v thereunto_o the_o antecedent_n be_v partly_o manifest_a by_o what_o be_v say_v from_o their_o different_a language_n and_o other_o consideration_n moreover_o 1_o the_o person_n that_o will_v have_v appeal_n to_o they_o and_o cause_n to_o be_v judge_v if_o real_o they_o will_v do_v the_o work_n of_o a_o sovereign_a power_n and_o judge_n will_v be_v so_o many_o million_o that_o there_o will_v be_v no_o room_n for_o they_o about_o their_o door_n nor_o any_o leisure_n in_o many_o year_n to_o hear_v their_o far_o cause_n if_o you_o say_v it_o be_v not_o so_o in_o former_a council_n i_o answer_v that_o be_v because_o they_o be_v not_o true_o general_n or_o be_v call_v in_o such_o time_n when_o the_o church_n do_v lie_v in_o a_o narrow_a compass_n and_o not_o in_o such_o remote_a part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o because_o they_o be_v assemble_v indeed_o but_o occasional_o to_o advise_v upon_o and_o determine_v some_o one_o particular_a man_n case_n or_o few_o and_o never_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o be_v the_o sovereign_a power_n or_o head_n of_o the_o church_n or_o its_o essential_a form_n or_o centre_n of_o unity_n 2._o these_o million_o of_o person_n that_o have_v so_o many_o cause_n will_v have_v so_o far_o to_o travail_v that_o it_o will_v put_v they_o to_o great_a cost_n and_o labour_n to_o come_v and_o attend_v and_o bring_v all_o their_o witness_n and_o if_o they_o be_v not_o sound_a body_a then_o our_o english_a soldier_n the_o poor_a people_n of_o mexico_n and_o other_o part_n of_o those_o indies_n to_o look_v no_o further_o will_v be_v a_o great_a part_n of_o they_o dead_a by_o the_o way_n before_o they_o can_v reach_v the_o general_n council_n e._n g._n if_o it_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o europe_n 3._o and_o the_o council_n will_v not_o be_v competent_a judge_n of_o so_o many_o cause_n which_o by_o distance_n must_v needs_o be_v much_o unknown_a in_o many_o weighty_a circumstance_n who_o cognisance_n be_v necessary_a 4._o and_o last_o such_o council_n will_v sit_v so_o seldom_o that_o the_o work_n will_v be_v undo_v argum._n 5._o if_o god_n have_v intend_v that_o such_o a_o council_n shall_v have_v be_v the_o form_n of_o his_o church_n or_o the_o necessary_a governor_n of_o it_o he_o will_v have_v acquaint_v we_o with_o his_o will_n concern_v some_o certain_a power_n to_o summon_v they_o or_o will_v have_v authorize_v some_o or_o other_o to_o call_v such_o a_o council_n but_o he_o have_v not_o acquaint_v we_o with_o his_o will_n herein_o nor_o authorize_v any_o to_o call_v such_o a_o council_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o his_o intent_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v the_o form_n or_o necessary_a governor_n of_o his_o church_n either_o this_o council_n must_v meet_v by_o a_o authoritative_a call_n or_o by_o consent_n if_o by_o such_o a_o call_n who_o must_v call_v they_o the_o pope_n pretence_n to_o this_o authority_n be_v voluminous_o and_o unansweràble_o confute_v long_o ago_o and_o it_o be_v well_o know_v what_o ever_o baronius_n say_v that_o the_o ancient_a council_n be_v call_v by_o the_o emperor_n and_o many_o since_o have_v be_v call_v by_o emperor_n and_o cardinal_n and_o if_o you_o say_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o emperor_n i_o answer_v what_o have_v he_o to_o do_v to_o summon_v the_o subject_n of_o the_o french_a spaniard_n turk_n aethiopian_a &_o c_o and_o by_o this_o it_o appear_v that_o we_o never_o have_v true_a universal_a council_n they_o be_v but_o general_a as_o to_o the_o roman_a world_n or_o empire_n for_o who_o ever_o precide_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o emperor_n call_v they_o and_o what_o have_v constantine_n martian_a theodosius_n or_o any_o roman_a emperor_n to_o do_v to_o call_v the_o subject_n in_o india_n aethiopia_n persia_n etc._n etc._n to_o a_o council_n nor_o de_fw-la facto_fw-la be_v there_o any_o such_o thing_n do_v be_v it_o not_o a_o wonderful_a thing_n that_o the_o pope_n and_o all_o his_o follower_n shall_v be_v or_o seem_v so_o blind_v to_o this_o day_n as_o to_o take_v the_o empire_n for_o the_o whole_a earth_n or_o the_o roman_a world_n for_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n yet_o this_o be_v their_o all_o if_o you_o say_v that_o it_o must_v be_v do_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o prince_n then_o either_o of_o christian_a prince_n or_o of_o all_o if_o of_o the_o christian_a only_o you_o must_v exclude_v the_o bishop_n that_o be_v under_o mahometan_n and_o heathen_a prince_n and_o then_o it_o will_v be_v no_o general_n council_n especial_o if_o it_o be_v now_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o jacob_n à_fw-it vitriaco_fw-it the_o pope_n legate_n in_o the_o east_n who_o say_v that_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o easterly_a part_n of_o asia_n alone_o exceed_v in_o number_n the_o christian_n both_o of_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n and_o whether_o it_o be_v all_o prince_n or_o only_o christian_a prince_n that_o shall_v consent_v who_o can_v tell_v whether_o ever_o it_o will_v be_v god_n have_v not_o promise_v to_o lead_v they_o to_o such_o a_o consent_n and_o they_o be_v unlikely_a of_o themselves_o as_o be_v many_o and_o distant_a and_o of_o different_a interest_n and_o apprehension_n and_o usual_o in_o war_n with_o one_o another_o so_o that_o if_o a_o age_n shall_v be_v spend_v in_o treat_v of_o a_o general_n council_n among_o they_o it_o be_v ten_o to_o one_o that_o the_o treaty_n will_v be_v in_o vain_a and_o its_o next_o to_o a_o impossibility_n that_o all_o shall_v consent_v beside_o no_o man_n can_v show_v a_o commission_n from_o god_n to_o enable_v they_o and_o only_o they_o to_o such_o a_o work_n but_o if_o you_o say_v that_o it_o must_v be_v do_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o the_o impossibility_n moral_n be_v apparent_a who_o will_v be_v find_v that_o will_v be_v at_o the_o cost_n and_o pain_n to_o agitate_v the_o business_n among_o they_o no_o one_o can_v appoint_v the_o time_n and_o place_n but_o by_o consent_n of_o the_o rest_n who_o do_v it_o belong_v to_o to_o travail_v to_o the_o indies_n aethiopia_n egypt_n palestine_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n to_o treat_v with_o the_o bishop_n about_o the_o time_n and_o place_n of_o a_o council_n and_o how_o many_o life_n must_v he_o have_v that_o shall_v do_v it_o and_o when_o he_o find_v they_o of_o a_o hundred_o mind_n what_o course_n shall_v he_o take_v and_o how_o many_o more_o journey_n about_o the_o world_n must_v he_o make_v to_o bring_v they_o to_o a_o agreement_n but_o i_o be_o ashamed_a to_o bestow_v more_o word_n on_o so_o evident_a a_o case_n argum._n 6._o the_o head_n or_o sovereign_n of_o the_o church_n as_o of_o every_o body_n politic_a have_v the_o legislative_a power_n over_o the_o whole_a the_o pope_n or_o a_o general_n council_n have_v not_o the_o legislative_a power_n over_o the_o whole_a therefore_o the_o pope_n or_o general_n council_n be_v not_o the_o
be_v impossible_a to_o most_o of_o the_o world_n as_o be_v before_o show_v and_o be_v it_o possible_a it_o will_v be_v so_o tedious_a and_o laborious_a a_o course_n that_o its_o ridiculous_a in_o most_o to_o mention_v such_o appeal_n argum._n 9_o the_o sovereign_a or_o head_n of_o the_o church_n as_o of_o every_o body_n politic_a have_v power_n to_o deprive_v and_o denude_v any_o other_o of_o their_o power_n the_o pope_n or_o general_n council_n have_v not_o power_n to_o do_v so_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o head_n or_o sovereign_n of_o the_o church_n the_o major_n be_v a_o know_a principle_n in_o polity_n he_o that_o give_v power_n can_v take_v it_o away_o and_o it_o be_v confess_v by_o the_o opponent_n in_o this_o case_n the_o minor_a i_o prove_v 1._o because_o else_o it_o will_v be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o council_n whether_o christ_n shall_v have_v any_o ministry_n and_o church_n or_o not_o they_o may_v at_o least_o make_v havoc_n of_o it_o at_o pleasure_n but_o that_o be_v false_a 2._o as_o be_v before_o say_v we_o receive_v not_o our_o power_n from_o they_o therefore_o they_o can_v take_v it_o from_o we_o 3._o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v make_v we_o overseer_n of_o the_o flock_n act._n 20._o 28._o and_o lay_v a_o necessity_n on_o we_o and_o denounce_v a_o woe_n against_o we_o if_o we_o preach_v not_o the_o gospel_n and_o have_v no_o where_o give_v we_o leave_n to_o give_v over_o his_o work_n if_o the_o pope_n or_o a_o council_n shall_v forbid_v we_o 4._o and_o they_o can_v show_v no_o commission_n from_o christ_n that_o give_v they_o such_o a_o power_n arg._n 10._o if_o it_o be_v the_o form_n or_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n to_o have_v a_o humane_a visible_a head_n than_o our_o relation_n to_o such_o a_o head_n will_v be_v essential_a to_o our_o membership_n or_o christianity_n but_o the_o consequence_n be_v false_a therefore_o so_o be_v the_o antecedent_n the_o falseness_n of_o the_o consequent_a be_v apparent_a 1._o in_o that_o it_o cruel_o and_o unground_o unchristen_v all_o that_o do_v not_o believe_v in_o such_o a_o visible_a head_n that_o be_v the_o great_a part_n by_o far_o of_o the_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n and_o 2._o by_o the_o ensue_a argument_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o consequence_n be_v evident_a of_o itself_o argum._n 11._o if_o such_o a_o visible_a head_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n and_o so_o to_o our_o christianity_n then_o shall_v we_o all_o be_v baptise_a into_o the_o pope_n or_o a_o general_n council_n as_o true_o and_o necessary_o as_o we_o be_v baptize_v into_o the_o church_n but_o we_o neither_o be_v nor_o aught_o to_o be_v so_o baptize_v into_o the_o pope_n or_o a_o general_n council_n therefore_o they_o be_v not_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n or_o our_o christianity_n the_o major_n viz._n the_o consequence_n be_v clear_a and_o not_o deny_v by_o the_o papist_n who_o affirm_v that_o baptism_n engage_v the_o baptize_v to_o the_o pope_n he_o that_o be_v unite_v to_o the_o body_n be_v unite_v to_o the_o head_n he_o that_o be_v list_v into_o the_o army_n be_v list_v to_o and_o under_o the_o general_n he_o that_o be_v enter_v into_o the_o commonwealth_n be_v engage_v to_o the_o sovereign_n thereof_o but_o that_o we_o be_v not_o baptize_v to_o the_o pope_n or_o a_o general_n council_n be_v prove_v 1._o because_o neither_o the_o form_n of_o baptism_n nor_o any_o word_n in_o scripture_n do_v affirm_v such_o a_o thing_n 2._o no_o person_n in_o scripture_n time_n be_v so_o baptize_v man_n be_v baptize_v before_o there_o be_v a_o pope_n at_o rome_n or_o a_o general_n council_n and_o afterward_o none_o be_v baptize_v to_o they_o at_o least_o for_o many_o hundred_o year_n otherwise_o then_o as_o they_o be_v enter_v into_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n who_o be_v inhabitant_n there_o 3._o never_o any_o be_v baptize_v to_o peter_n or_o paul_n or_o any_o of_o the_o apostle_n say_v paul_n 1_o cor._n 1._o 13._o be_v paul_n crucify_v for_o you_o or_o be_v you_o baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o paul_n they_o must_v be_v baptize_v into_o the_o name_n of_o no_o visible_a head_n but_o he_o that_o be_v crucify_v for_o they_o 4._o the_o apostle_n full_o resolve_v all_o the_o doubt_n 1_o cor._n 12._o describe_v the_o body_n into_o which_o we_o be_v baptize_v ver_fw-la 13._o and_o he_o entitle_v it_o from_o the_o head_n christ_n vers_fw-la 12._o but_o acknowledge_v no_o other_o head_n either_o coequal_a with_o christ_n or_o subordinate_a the_o high_a of_o the_o other_o member_n be_v call_v by_o paul_n but_o eye_n and_o hand_n and_o thus_o apostle_n prophet_n teacher_n miracle_n gift_n of_o heal_a help_n government_n be_v only_o say_v to_o be_v set_v in_o the_o church_n as_o eye_n and_o hand_n in_o the_o body_n but_o not_o over_o the_o church_n as_o the_o head_n or_o sovereign_a power_n ver_fw-la 17_o 18_o 19_o 28_o 29._o so_o that_o though_o he_o that_o be_v baptize_v into_o the_o church_n be_v baptize_v into_o a_o organical_a body_n and_o relate_v to_o the_o pastor_n as_o to_o hand_n and_o eye_n yet_o not_o as_o to_o a_o head_n nor_o as_o to_o a_o representative_a body_n neither_o and_o i_o think_v neither_o pope_n nor_o council_n shall_v pretend_v to_o be_v more_o than_o apostle_n prophet_n and_o teacher_n and_o government_n if_o the_o form_n of_o baptism_n have_v but_o deliver_v down_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o a_o council_n as_o it_o do_v the_o authority_n and_o name_n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n tradition_n will_v have_v be_v a_o tolerable_a argument_n for_o they_o though_o scripture_n have_v be_v silent_a but_o when_o the_o baptismal_a tradition_n itself_o be_v silent_a and_o it_o be_v a_o doctrine_n so_o monstruous_o strange_a to_o the_o primitive_a church_n that_o all_o the_o baptize_v be_v baptize_v to_o the_o pope_n or_o a_o general_n council_n i_o know_v no_o remedy_n but_o they_o must_v both_o put_v up_o their_o pretence_n argum._n 12._o the_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n into_o which_o they_o be_v baptize_v be_v part_n of_o the_o doctrine_n which_o the_o catechumeni_fw-la be_v teach_v and_o all_o at_o age_n shall_v learn_v before_o their_o baptism_n the_o sovereignty_n or_o headship_n of_o pope_n or_o council_n be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o doctrine_n which_o by_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o catechumeni_fw-la be_v teach_v and_o aught_o to_o learn_v before_o their_o baptism_n therefore_o the_o sovereignty_n or_o headship_n of_o pope_n or_o council_n be_v not_o then_o take_v to_o be_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n the_o major_n be_v evident_a 1._o in_o that_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v in_o the_o creed_n and_o its_o essential_o there_o brief_o express_v in_o those_o term_n holy_a catholic_n church_n and_o communion_n of_o saint_n 2._o in_o that_o church_n history_n full_o acquaint_v we_o that_o it_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o catethist_n and_o other_o teacher_n to_o open_v the_o creed_n to_o they_o before_o they_o baptize_v they_o and_o therein_o the_o article_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n the_o minor_a be_v prove_v by_o a_o induction_n of_o all_o the_o record_n of_o those_o time_n which_o in_o gross_a may_v now_o suffice_v according_a to_o our_o present_a intend_a brevity_n to_o be_v mention_v there_o be_v no_o one_o writer_n of_o many_o hundred_o year_n no_o not_o origen_n tertullian_n irenaeus_n or_o any_o other_o that_o purposely_o recite_v the_o church_n belief_n which_o the_o catechumeni_fw-la be_v teach_v nor_o cyril_n or_o john_n hierosol_n or_o any_o other_o who_o open_v those_o article_n to_o the_o catechuman_n that_o ever_o once_o mention_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o headship_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o council_n when_o they_o open_v the_o article_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n nor_o yet_o at_o any_o other_o time_n if_o they_o affirm_v that_o they_o do_v let_v they_o prove_v it_o if_o they_o can_v argum._n 13._o as_o it_o be_v high_a treason_n in_o a_o republic_n to_o deny_v the_o sovereign_n and_o to_o be_v cut_v off_o from_o he_o be_v to_o be_v cut_v off_o from_o the_o commonwealth_n so_o it_o will_v be_v a_o damn_v unchristen_a sin_n to_o deny_v the_o headship_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o general_n council_n if_o they_o be_v indeed_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n but_o it_o be_v no_o such_o damn_v unchristen_a sin_n therefore_o they_o be_v not_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n the_o major_n be_v plain_a from_o the_o nature_n of_o sovereignty_n the_o minor_a be_v certain_o prove_v 1._o because_o it_o be_v never_o mention_v in_o scripture_n nor_o any_o ancient_a writer_n for_o many_o hundred_o year_n as_o a_o state_n of_o apostasy_n nor_o as_o a_o damn_v sin_n nor_o as_o any_o sin_n to_o deny_v
the_o say_a headship_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o council_n 2._o because_o else_o most_o of_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o world_n at_o this_o day_n be_v apostate_n and_o unchristened_a or_o if_o that_o seem_v a_o tolerable_a conclusion_n to_o the_o romanist_n yet_o 3._o because_o than_o christ_n have_v no_o church_n for_o some_o hundred_o of_o year_n which_o i_o know_v they_o will_v not_o think_v so_o tolerable_a a_o conclusion_n for_o to_o dream_v that_o the_o ancient_a christian_n do_v know_v any_o head_n of_o the_o church_n but_o christ_n or_o be_v engage_v in_o loyalty_n to_o the_o pope_n or_o council_n be_v a_o disease_n that_o few_o be_v liable_a to_o except_o such_o as_o be_v stranger_n to_o the_o write_n of_o those_o time_n or_o such_o as_o read_v they_o with_o roman_a spectacle_n resolve_v what_o to_o find_v in_o they_o before_o hand_n argum._n 14._o all_o christian_n be_v bind_v to_o study_v or_o labour_n to_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o law_n of_o the_o sovereign_a power_n of_o the_o church_n all_o christian_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o study_v or_o labour_n to_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o law_n of_o pope_n and_o council_n therefore_o the_o law_n of_o pope_n and_o council_n be_v not_o the_o law_n of_o the_o sovereign_a power_n of_o the_o church_n the_o major_n be_v prove_v in_o that_o all_o subject_n must_v obey_v the_o law_n of_o the_o sovereign_a power_n but_o they_o can_v obey_v they_o unless_o they_o know_v they_o therefore_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o endeavour_v to_o know_v they_o the_o minor_a be_v prove_v 1._o in_o that_o they_o be_v write_v in_o latin_a and_o greek_a which_o a_o very_a small_a part_n of_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o world_n do_v understand_v and_o their_o teacher_n not_o sufficient_o expound_v they_o and_o they_o be_v more_o copious_a and_o voluminous_a more_o obscure_a and_o uncertain_a of_o which_o next_o than_o for_o all_o private_a christian_n to_o understand_v the_o people_n can_v learn_v these_o have_v enough_o to_o do_v to_o learn_v god_n word_n 2._o the_o papist_n that_o deny_v the_o use_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o the_o people_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n and_o deny_v the_o necessity_n of_o understand_v they_o will_v sure_o say_v the_o same_o of_o their_o decretal_n and_o canon_n unless_o they_o mean_v to_o set_v they_o up_o above_o the_o scripture_n as_o well_o as_o equal_v they_o thereto_o argum._n 15._o the_o sovereign_a head_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o centre_n of_o our_o unity_n must_v be_v evident_a that_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n may_v know_v it_o the_o pope_n and_o general_n council_n be_v not_o such_o therefore_o neither_o of_o they_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n the_o major_n be_v confess_v by_o the_o opponent_n and_o it_o be_v plain_a because_o man_n can_v obey_v a_o unknown_a power_n the_o minor_a be_v know_v by_o common_a experience_n for_o many_o a_o year_n together_o by_o bellarmine_n confession_n learned_a and_o wise_a man_n can_v not_o tell_v which_o be_v the_o true_a pope_n yea_o their_o council_n can_v not_o tell_v most_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n to_o this_o day_n can_v discern_v his_o commission_n for_o that_o power_n which_o he_o pretend_v to_o a_o true_a general_n council_n now_o no_o man_n can_v know_v because_o it_o be_v a_o non_fw-la ens_fw-la their_o pretend_a general_n council_n be_v so_o ravel_v in_o confusion_n that_o they_o be_v not_o agree_v among_o themselves_o which_o be_v indeed_o such_o and_o which_o not_o but_o many_o be_v reject_v and_o many_o suspect_v of_o which_o bellarmine_n give_v we_o a_o list_n and_o those_o that_o one_o receive_v another_o reject_v and_o the_o most_o by_o far_o be_v reject_v by_o most_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o when_o some_o will_v take_v up_o with_o the_o four_o first_o and_o some_o with_o six_o and_o some_o with_o eight_o the_o papist_n deride_o ask_v they_o whether_o the_o church_n have_v not_o as_o much_o authority_n now_o as_o it_o have_v then_o and_o how_o shall_v the_o christian_a world_n know_v whether_o it_o be_v a_o true_a general_n council_n or_o not_o of_o which_o see_v the_o difficulty_n first_o to_o be_v resolve_v which_o i_o have_v recite_v in_o my_o disputation_n against_o popery_n argum._n 16._o the_o law_n of_o the_o sovereign_a power_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v certain_a or_o else_o how_o shall_v we_o know_v what_o to_o obey_v the_o law_n of_o pope_n and_o general_a council_n be_v not_o certain_a therefore_o etc._n etc._n the_o minor_a be_v prove_v by_o experience_n the_o pope_n decretal_n be_v many_o unknown_a and_o many_o prove_a forgery_n by_o blondell_n ubi_fw-la sup_n and_o many_o other_o beyond_o all_o question_n and_o none_o of_o they_o prove_v law_n to_o the_o church_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a be_v not_o agree_v on_o among_o the_o papist_n many_o other_o be_v prove_v forge_v many_o be_v flat_o contrary_a to_o each_o other_o as_o i_o have_v show_v ubi_fw-la sup_n and_o how_o then_o shall_v christian_n know_v what_o to_o obey_v the_o ancient_a canon_n condemn_v the_o gesture_n of_o kneel_v on_o the_o lord_n day_n and_o consequent_o then_o at_o the_o lord_n supper_n the_o read_n of_o the_o heathen_n book_n and_o many_o such_o thing_n which_o be_v now_o take_v for_o lawful_a the_o late_a council_n that_o contradict_v the_o former_a do_v seem_v to_o most_o of_o more_o questionable_a authority_n than_o they_o and_o what_o council_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v and_o what_o reject_v they_o be_v not_o agree_v among_o themselves_o nor_o have_v any_o certain_a rule_n to_o know_v by_o on_o which_o they_o be_v agree_v nor_o will_v their_o pope_n or_o council_n yet_o resolve_v they_o this_o great_a question_n so_o that_o christian_n be_v at_o a_o loss_n concern_v these_o law_n and_o know_v not_o which_o of_o they_o they_o be_v oblige_v by_o and_o which_o not_o argum._n 17._o if_o the_o pope_n or_o council_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n then_o must_v their_o law_n be_v preach_v to_o the_o people_n by_o their_o teacher_n but_o the_o law_n of_o pope_n and_o council_n need_v not_o be_v preach_v to_o the_o people_n by_o their_o teacher_n therefore_o etc._n etc._n the_o reason_n of_o the_o major_n be_v because_o the_o law_n that_o they_o must_v obey_v in_o matter_n spiritual_a in_o order_n to_o salvation_n the_o minister_n must_v preach_v to_o they_o but_o these_o be_v pretend_v to_o be_v such_o therefore_o etc._n etc._n as_o to_o the_o minor_a 1._o it_o will_v be_v but_o a_o unhandsome_a thing_n in_o their_o own_o hear_n for_o preacher_n to_o take_v their_o text_n out_o of_o the_o canon_n or_o decretal_n and_o preach_v these_o day_n after_o day_n to_o the_o people_n which_o yet_o they_o have_v need_v to_o do_v many_o a_o year_n if_o the_o obedience_n of_o they_o be_v our_o necessary_a duty_n 2._o minister_n be_v command_v to_o preach_v only_o the_o gospel_n and_o it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v sufficient_a or_o able_a to_o make_v we_o perfect_a and_o build_v we_o up_o to_o salvation_n therefore_o we_o need_v not_o preach_v the_o canon_n or_o decretal_n argum._n 18._o while_o a_o visible_a head_n can_v be_v agree_v on_o even_o by_o those_o that_o will_v have_v the_o church_n unite_v in_o suoh_o a_o head_n it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o they_o as_o if_o there_o be_v no_o such_o head_n and_o the_o union_n still_o be_v unattainable_a by_o they_o but_o even_o among_o the_o papist_n themselves_o a_o visible_a head_n be_v not_o can_v be_v agree_v on_o therefore_o etc._n etc._n what_o good_a will_v it_o do_v to_o say_v we_o must_v centre_n some_o where_o and_o know_v not_o where_o and_o obey_v some_o body_n and_o know_v not_o who_o the_o italian_n and_o spanish_n make_v the_o pope_n the_o infallible_a head_n and_o say_v a_o general_n council_n without_o he_o may_v err_v and_o be_v but_o the_o body_n the_o french_a make_v the_o council_n the_o head_n and_o say_v the_o pope_n may_v err_v and_o that_o the_o infallibility_n such_o as_o they_o plead_v for_o be_v in_o the_o council_n it_o be_v not_o a_o head_n but_o this_o head_n in_o specie_fw-la that_o be_v the_o form_n of_o the_o church_n if_o any_o such_o be_v and_o therefore_o they_o must_v needs_o according_a to_o their_o own_o principle_n be_v of_o divers_a church_n while_o they_o place_v the_o sovereignty_n in_o several_a sort_n and_o person_n till_o they_o better_o agree_v among_o themselves_o in_o their_o fundamental_o and_o essential_o of_o the_o church_n we_o have_v small_a encouragement_n to_o think_v of_o unite_n on_o any_o of_o their_o ground_n argum._n 19_o the_o sovereign_a power_n or_o headship_n over_o the_o church_n be_v a_o thing_n undoubted_o revealee_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o we_o can_v imagine_v that_o the_o scripture_n shall_v be_v silent_a in_o so_o
weighty_a a_o point_n without_o intolerable_a accusation_n of_o it_o the_o sovereign_a power_n or_o headship_n of_o pope_n or_o council_n be_v not_o reveal_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n therefore_o etc._n etc._n they_o have_v not_o yet_o produce_v a_o text_n to_o prove_v either_o of_o they_o those_o produce_v by_o the_o italian_n for_o the_o pope_n headship_n be_v disclaim_v by_o the_o french_a as_o mean_v no_o such_o thing_n and_o our_o writer_n have_v large_o manifest_v their_o abuse_n of_o the_o text._n so_o have_v they_o do_v of_o those_o that_o be_v bring_v for_o the_o headship_n of_o council_n these_o text_n be_v speak_v to_o so_o full_o by_o chamier_n whitaker_n amesius_n and_o abundance_n more_o that_o i_o think_v it_o in_o vain_a to_o do_v it_o here_o again_o that_o of_o 1_o tim._n 3._o 15._o that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n do_v not_o speak_v a_o word_n of_o a_o general_n council_n nor_o a_o word_n of_o headship_n the_o whole_a church_n unite_v in_o christ_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n that_o be_v the_o certain_a receptacle_n and_o retainer_n of_o the_o truth_n the_o law_n of_o christ_n be_v write_v in_o their_o heart_n none_o seem_v more_o to_o favour_v their_o concecit_fw-la then_o ephes_n 4._o 15_o 16._o which_o grotius_n fasten_v on_o but_o even_o that_o be_v against_o they_o and_o not_o for_o they_o for_o 1._o it_o be_v christ_n and_o only_a christ_n that_o be_v here_o say_v to_o be_v the_o head_n and_o all_o other_o part_v contradistinguish_v and_o exclude_v from_o headship_n and_o the_o body_n be_v not_o say_v to_o be_v unite_v in_o they_o 2._o and_o it_o be_v by_o association_n and_o mutual_a communication_n of_o their_o several_a gift_n that_o the_o part_n be_v compact_v together_o and_o edify_v the_o whole_a and_o not_o by_o meeting_n in_o any_o one_o and_o derive_v from_o it_o object_n but_o be_v not_o the_o apostle_n general_a officer_n and_o so_o the_o church_n unite_v in_o general_a officer_n answ_n this_o be_v little_a to_o the_o question_n for_o 1._o the_o apostle_n have_v one_o among_o they_o to_o be_v the_o sovereign_n or_o head_n of_o the_o rest_n but_o be_v of_o equal_a power_n 2._o nor_o do_v a_o major_a part_n of_o their_o whole_a number_n make_v such_o a_o head_n for_o the_o church_n to_o unite_v in_o nor_o do_v we_o read_v that_o ever_o a_o major_a vote_n carry_v it_o among_o they_o against_o a_o minor_a for_o they_o be_v all_o guide_v by_o the_o spirit_n yet_o its_o true_a that_o they_o meet_v oft_o together_o then_o a_o general_n council_n can_v 2._o the_o apostle_n as_o extraordinary_o qualify_v and_o as_o the_o secretary_n of_o the_o spirit_n have_v no_o successor_n but_o the_o apostle_n as_o ambulatory_a unfixed_a minister_n have_v even_o then_o many_o companion_n for_o barnabas_n luke_n apollo_n and_o abundance_n more_o do_v then_o go_v up_o and_o down_o preach_v as_o well_o as_o the_o apostle_n yet_o have_v not_o any_o one_o of_o they_o a_o special_a charge_n of_o govern_v all_o the_o church_n nor_o yet_o all_o of_o they_o unite_v in_o a_o body_n for_o the_o apostle_n call_v not_o the_o evangelist_n and_o other_o fellow_n worker_n to_o consult_v in_o council_n about_o the_o government_n of_o the_o whole_a but_o both_o they_o and_o their_o helper_n do_v several_o what_o they_o can_v to_o teach_v and_o settle_v the_o church_n 3._o who_o be_v they_o now_o that_o be_v the_o apostle_n successor_n if_o all_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o world_n the_o case_n be_v as_o we_o leave_v it_o if_o any_o small_a number_n of_o primate_fw-la or_o patriarck_n how_o shall_v we_o know_v which_o and_o how_o many_o if_o they_o be_v not_o twelve_o why_o shall_v one_o apostle_n have_v a_o successor_n and_o not_o other_o but_o there_o be_v no_o twelve_o only_a that_o lie_v claim_v to_o the_o succession_n and_o if_o you_o go_v further_o who_o can_v limit_v and_o say_v who_o and_o how_o many_o they_o be_v and_o how_o far_o the_o number_n may_v be_v increase_v or_o decrease_v and_o by_o who_o in_o cyprian_n day_n he_o and_o his_o fellow_n in_o the_o council_n at_o carthage_n declare_v that_o all_o bishop_n be_v equal_a and_o none_o have_v power_n over_o other_o and_o so_o think_v other_o in_o those_o time_n nor_o be_v there_o then_o any_o number_n of_o bishop_n that_o claim_v to_o be_v the_o sole_a successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o rule_v all_o the_o rest_n and_o if_o they_o have_v when_o the_o church_n increase_v the_o ruler_n must_v increase_v but_o this_o be_v not_o to_o the_o main_a point_n argum._n 20._o the_o scripture_n do_v appropriate_v the_o universal_a headship_n to_o christ_n only_o and_o deny_v it_o to_o all_o other_o therefore_o neither_o pope_n nor_o council_n be_v the_o universal_a head_n eph._n 5._o 23._o it_o be_v the_o peculiar_a title_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n to_o who_o it_o must_v be_v subject_a 1_o cor._n 11._o 3._o the_o apostle_n will_v have_v we_o know_v that_o the_o head_n of_o every_o man_n be_v christ_n and_o the_o head_n of_o the_o woman_n be_v the_o man_n and_o the_o head_n of_o christ_n be_v god_n so_o that_o there_o be_v a_o particular_a head_n over_o some_o parcel_n of_o the_o body_n below_o christ_n but_o to_o be_v the_o universal_a head_n of_o every_o man_n be_v the_o proper_a title_n of_o christ_n in_o 1_o cor._n 12._o the_o unity_n of_o the_o body_n and_o diversity_n of_o the_o member_n be_v more_o large_o express_v then_o any_o where_o else_o in_o scripture_n and_o there_o when_o the_o say_a unity_n of_o the_o body_n have_v be_v so_o full_o mention_v the_o apostle_n come_v to_o name_v the_o head_n of_o that_o unity_n verse_n 27._o which_o be_v only_a christ_n now_o you_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o member_n in_o particular_a the_o church_n be_v never_o call_v the_o body_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o of_o a_o council_n but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n yea_o as_o be_v even_o now_o say_v in_o the_o next_o word_n the_o apostle_n prophet_n and_o teacher_n be_v enumerate_v to_o the_o particular_a member_n contradistinct_a from_o the_o head_n so_o far_o be_v all_o or_o any_o one_o of_o they_o from_o be_v the_o head_n themselves_o and_o in_o col._n 2._o 10_o 17_o 19_o it_o be_v christ_n only_o that_o be_v call_v the_o head_n and_o the_o body_n be_v say_v to_o be_v of_o christ_n and_o he_o only_o be_v mention_v as_o the_o centre_n of_o its_o unity_n and_o not_o hold_v the_o head_n from_o which_o all_o the_o body_n by_o joint_n and_o band_n have_v nourishment_n minister_v and_o knit_v together_o increase_v with_o the_o increase_n of_o god_n and_o col._n 1._o 18._o and_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o body_n the_o church_n if_o any_o say_v that_o you_o can_v hence_o argue_v negative_o that_o therefore_o no_o one_o else_o be_v the_o head_n i_o answer_v they_o may_v as_o well_o say_v when_o it_o be_v affirm_v that_o the_o lord_n he_o be_v god_n you_o can_v thence_o conclude_v that_o baal_n be_v not_o god_n the_o apostle_n plain_o speak_v this_o of_o christ_n as_o his_o peculiar_a honour_n and_o he_o speak_v to_o man_n that_o know_v well_o enough_o that_o natural_a body_n have_v but_o one_o head_n unless_o they_o be_v monster_n and_o he_o will_v not_o so_o oft_o insist_v on_o this_o metaphor_n intend_v so_o great_a a_o disparity_n in_o the_o similitude_n and_o never_o discover_v any_o such_o intention_n so_o in_o ephes_n 1._o 22._o he_o give_v he_o to_o be_v head_n over_o all_o thing_n to_o the_o church_n which_o be_v his_o body_n the_o fullness_n of_o he_o that_o fill_v all_o in_o all_o and_o in_o ephes_n 4._o the_o apostle_n purposely_o exhort_v we_o to_o the_o observation_n of_o this_o unity_n and_o purposely_o tell_v we_o by_o a_o large_a enumeration_n wherein_o it_o do_v consist_v but_o in_o all_o he_o never_o mention_v the_o pope_n or_o a_o council_n yea_o he_o plain_o exclude_v they_o verse_n 3_o 4._o etc._n etc._n endeavour_v to_o keep_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n there_o be_v one_o body_n and_o one_o spirit_n even_o as_o you_o be_v call_v in_o one_o hope_n of_o your_o call_n one_o lord_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n one_o god_n and_o father_n of_o all_o who_o be_v above_o all_o and_o through_o all_o and_o in_o you_o all_o but_o unto_o every_o one_o of_o we_o be_v give_v grace_n according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o christ_n he_o give_v some_o apostle_n and_o some_o prophet_n and_o some_o evangelist_n and_o some_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n for_o the_o perfect_a of_o the_o saint_n for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n for_o the_o edify_v of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n till_o we_o all_o come_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o
by_o force_n the_o pastor_n be_v the_o judge_n of_o heresy_n and_o vice_n ad_fw-la hoc_fw-la thus_o far_o so_o as_o to_o judge_v who_o shall_v be_v denounce_v by_o themselves_o unmeet_a for_o the_o church_n communion_n and_o judge_n of_o sound_a doctrine_n so_o far_o as_o to_o resolve_v what_o be_v by_o themselves_o to_o be_v teach_v to_o the_o people_n and_o judge_n of_o that_o magistrate_n so_o far_o as_o to_o determine_v whether_o he_o be_v a_o fit_a subject_n for_o their_o administration_n and_o communion_n for_o every_o man_n be_v to_o judge_v when_o he_o be_v to_o act_v and_o execute_v in_o these_o case_n and_o therefore_o when_o the_o question_n be_v who_o be_v to_o be_v tolerate_v or_o forcible_o restrain_v the_o magistrate_n be_v the_o only_a judge_n and_o the_o minister_n but_o a_o teacher_n but_o the_o question_n be_v who_o shall_v i_o admit_v or_o not_o admit_v to_o my_o communion_n and_o who_o shall_v i_o persuade_v and_o require_v the_o church_n to_o avoid_v or_o to_o receive_v here_o the_o pastor_n be_v the_o judge_n and_o when_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o the_o pastor_n go_v according_a to_o god_n word_n or_o not_o here_o the_o people_n have_v judicium_fw-la discretionis_fw-la and_o can_v be_v force_v though_o they_o ought_v to_o obey_v where_o they_o see_v not_o sufficient_a reason_n to_o the_o contrary_a mat._n 28._o 18_o 19_o heb._n 13._o 17._o 1_o thes_n 5._o 12._o 1_o cor._n 4._o 1._o luk._n 12._o 42_o 44._o 1_o sam._n 28._o 18._o dan._n 9_o 8_o 10._o joh._n 20._o 23._o 2_o chron._n 36._o 14_o 15_o 16._o 19_o the_o honour_n and_o power_n of_o the_o pastor_n be_v for_o their_o work_n and_o so_o great_a be_v that_o work_n that_o as_o to_o fleshly_a accommodation_n it_o lay_v we_o under_o abundance_n more_o trouble_n than_o the_o power_n and_o honour_n afford_v we_o relief_n from_o all_o true_a pastor_n therefore_o shall_v be_v so_o far_o from_o strive_v for_o power_n &_o greatness_n and_o rule_n and_o extent_n of_o their_o diocese_n as_o matter_n of_o advantage_n that_o they_o shall_v still_o look_v on_o their_o power_n but_o as_o power_n to_o thresh_v or_o plough_n or_o sow_v or_o reap_v a_o power_n to_o give_v alm_n to_o all_o the_o poor_a in_o the_o town_n to_o visit_v all_o the_o sick_a to_o cure_v mad_a man_n that_o will_v abuse_v i_o etc._n etc._n such_o a_o power_n to_o labour_n and_o suffer_v in_o do_v good_a and_o thus_o he_o that_o will_v be_v the_o great_a but_o think_v of_o no_o other_o kind_n of_o greatness_n but_o a_o power_n to_o become_v the_o servant_n of_o all_o if_o man_n have_v these_o true_a apprehension_n of_o the_o episcopal_a office_n they_o will_v be_v no_o more_o forward_o in_o contend_v for_o power_n and_o large_a diocese_n than_o now_o they_o be_v in_o contend_v who_o shall_v instruct_v most_o of_o the_o ignorant_a or_o go_v to_o the_o poor_a ungodly_a family_n to_o further_a their_o reformation_n or_o entreat_v beseech_v exhort_v most_o of_o the_o obstinate_a from_o man_n to_o man_n or_o who_o shall_v relieve_v the_o most_o of_o the_o poor_a of_o all_o the_o country_n about_o and_o if_o this_o be_v it_o they_o contend_v for_o they_o may_v rule_v without_o a_o commission_n from_o the_o prince_n who_o will_v hinder_v they_o that_o have_v any_o fear_n of_o god_n 1_o cor._n 4._o 9_o 10_o 11_o 12_o 13_o 16._o act._n 20._o 18._o to_o the_o end_n 2_o cor._n 1._o 24._o mark_n 10._o 44._o 1_o thes_n 2_o 9_o luk._n 10._o 2._o 20._o no_o man_n be_v call_v by_o god_n to_o more_o work_n than_o he_o can_v possible_o do_v nor_o shall_v desire_v and_o undertake_v more_o and_o therefore_o if_o prelate_n and_o council_n and_o pope_n will_v but_o conscionable_o bethink_v they_o of_o the_o work_n what_o it_o be_v and_o how_o to_o be_v do_v &_o of_o what_o weight_n and_o how_o strict_a will_v be_v the_o account_n and_o then_o consider_v how_o they_o can_v do_v it_o our_o difference_n will_v quick_o be_v at_o end_n for_o though_o godly_a man_n will_v put_v off_o no_o service_n they_o can_v do_v yet_o when_o they_o look_v on_o the_o undertake_n of_o these_o impossibles_fw-fr they_o will_v tremble_v to_o think_v on_o it_o all_o conscionable_a man_n be_v sensible_a of_o their_o weakness_n and_o the_o weight_n of_o the_o work_n and_o say_v who_o be_v sufficient_a for_o these_o thing_n and_o i_o dare_v say_v the_o strong_a of_o they_o all_o will_v feel_v the_o weight_n of_o the_o burden_n of_o one_o parish_n and_o be_v readyer_n to_o beg_v and_o seek_v about_o for_o help_n then_o to_o contend_v for_o a_o a_o large_a diocese_n unless_o as_o the_o mere_a necessity_n of_o the_o church_n for_o want_v of_o laborer_n may_v call_v they_o to_o labour_n in_o other_o part_n duty_n suppose_v authority_n and_o authority_n suppose_v ability_n and_o opportunity_n even_o natural_a ability_n and_o mental_a qualification_n psal_n 131._o 1_o 2._o 2_o cor._n 2._o 16._o by_o this_o much_o you_o may_v see_v what_o unity_n may_v be_v expect_v in_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n 1._o a_o unity_n of_o internal_a faith_n and_o love_n and_o spirit_n among_o all_o real_a christian_n 2._o a_o unity_n of_o profession_n all_o profess_v the_o same_o belief_n that_o be_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o general_n and_o of_o the_o creed_n and_o essential_o of_o religion_n in_o particular_a and_o as_o many_o more_o of_o the_o particular_a truth_n as_o they_o can_v reach_v 3._o a_o unity_n of_o professor_n in_o local_a communion_n in_o the_o same_o assembly_n in_o god_n public_a worship_n in_o the_o word_n prayer_n praise_n sacrament_n etc._n etc._n where_o they_o cohabite_v or_o have_v opportunity_n for_o such_o communion_n 4._o among_o those_o that_o be_v out_o of_o our_o reach_n or_o be_v near_o we_o yet_o differ_v in_o some_o small_a thing_n where_o a_o difference_n be_v tolerable_a we_o may_v yet_o in_o word_n write_v and_o deed_n own_o each_o other_o as_o brethren_n and_o combine_v for_o the_o promote_a of_o the_o common_a good_a and_o the_o common_o receive_v truth_n and_o duty_n so_o that_o we_o have_v in_o these_o four_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n one_o body_n the_o catholic_n church_n comprehend_v all_o proper_o call_v christian_n one_o spirit_n the_o sanctify_a spirit_n of_o christ_n one_o hope_n of_o our_o call_n one_o promise_n or_o gospel_n and_o one_o heaven_n and_o end_n one_o lord_n even_a christ_n the_o only_a head_n of_o the_o church_n one_o faith_n both_o objective_n in_o scripture_n and_o the_o creed_n and_o subjective_n specifical_a which_o be_v our_o reception_n of_o scripture_n doctrine_n and_o of_o christ_n with_o his_o benefit_n one_o baptism_n enter_v all_o one_o and_o the_o same_o covenant_n with_o christ_n to_o be_v his_o and_o take_v he_o for_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n renounce_v the_o world_n the_o flesh_n and_o devil_n and_o signify_v this_o by_o external_a wash_n in_o the_o name_n of_o that_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n one_o god_n and_o father_n our_o creator_n preserver_n our_o end_n and_o happiness_n ephes_n 4._o 3_o 4_o 5._o and_o be_v all_o this_o nothing_o to_o you_o that_o seem_v so_o much_o to_o paul_n that_o unless_o you_o have_v also_o a_o earthly_a universal_a head_n and_o a_o unity_n in_o ceremony_n wherein_o all_o must_v be_v of_o your_o mind_n and_o conform_v to_o you_o as_o if_o you_o be_v god_n you_o will_v revile_v at_o our_o division_n and_o run_v to_o rome_n for_o further_a unity_n have_v lay_v down_o those_o ground_n or_o principle_n on_o which_o the_o unity_n and_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v build_v there_o appear_v not_o any_o great_a need_n of_o add_v any_o more_o for_o the_o reduce_v these_o to_o practice_n if_o these_o be_v but_o receive_v the_o way_n of_o practice_n will_v be_v obvious_a but_o brief_o i_o shall_v lay_v down_o these_o few_o proposition_n employ_v in_o those_o express_v before_o 1._o let_v every_o man_n profess_v his_o belief_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o general_n and_o in_o particular_a of_o all_o that_o scripture_n have_v express_v to_o be_v of_o necessity_n to_o salvation_n by_o denounce_v death_n to_o they_o that_o have_v it_o not_o and_o let_v they_o also_o profess_v to_o consent_v that_o god_n be_v their_o god_n and_o christ_n their_o saviour_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n their_o sanctifier_n and_o that_o they_o renounce_v the_o flesh_n the_o world_n and_o devil_n resolve_v to_o live_v a_o holy_a life_n and_o let_v this_o be_v by_o a_o credible_a way_n of_o profess_v and_o all_o that_o do_v thus_o let_v we_o esteem_v love_n and_o use_v they_o as_o christian_n till_o they_o some_o way_n plain_o disow_v this_o profession_n 2._o let_v every_o such_o baptise_a professor_n own_v also_o the_o ministry_n church_n and_o worship_n ordinance_n plain_o require_v
or_o infidel_n that_o will_v creep_v into_o place_n of_o council_n command_n or_o justice_n or_o any_o public_a office_n if_o ever_o such_o as_o these_o shall_v have_v a_o hand_n in_o your_o affair_n or_o be_v our_o ruler_n we_o know_v what_o we_o must_v expect_v the_o reason_n of_o our_o jealousy_n of_o such_o man_n be_v because_o we_o know_v that_o the_o design_n be_v agreeable_a to_o their_o principle_n and_o interest_n and_o we_o know_v it_o be_v their_o usual_a course_n and_o we_o find_v that_o such_o man_n swarm_v among_o we_o we_o hear_v their_o word_n we_o read_v their_o write_n we_o see_v their_o practice_n for_o popery_n and_o infidelity_n the_o jealousy_n of_o many_o wise_a man_n in_o england_n be_v very_o great_a concern_v the_o present_a design_n of_o this_o generation_n of_o man_n and_o not_o without_o cause_n we_o fear_v the_o mask_v papist_n and_o infidel_n more_o than_o the_o bare-faced_n or_o then_o any_o enemy_n the_o man_n that_o we_o be_v jealous_a of_o and_o over_o who_o we_o desire_v you_o to_o be_v vigilant_a be_v these_o hider_n that_o purposely_o obscure_a and_o cover_v their_o religion_n he_o that_o wilful_o conceal_v his_o faith_n allow_v i_o to_o suspect_v it_o to_o be_v naught_o the_o chief_a of_o they_o be_v 1._o the_o seeker_n that_o have_v not_o yet_o find_v a_o church_n a_o ministry_n ordinance_n or_o scripture_n nor_o some_o of_o they_o a_o christ_n to_o believe_v in_o 2._o the_o paracelsian_n behmenist_n and_o other_o enthusiast_n that_o purposely_o hide_v themselves_o in_o self-devised_n uncouth_a cloudy_a term_n and_o pretend_v to_o visible_a familiarity_n with_o spirit_n 3._o the_o vani_fw-la who_o god_n by_o wonder_n confound_v in_o new_a england_n but_o have_v here_o prevail_v far_o in_o the_o dark_a 4._o the_o secret_a guide_n of_o the_o quaker_n 5._o those_o that_o make_v it_o their_o business_n to_o argue_v against_o the_o religion_n of_o all_o other_o but_o assert_v little_a of_o their_o own_o endeavour_v to_o bring_v all_o man_n to_o uncertainty_n and_o loose_v they_o from_o the_o faith_n 6._o those_o that_o be_v still_o vilify_a or_o undermine_v the_o faithful_a godly_a ministry_n 7._o those_o that_o do_v secret_o or_o open_o plead_v the_o cause_n of_o infidel_n which_o be_v alas_o too_o many_o whether_o ex_fw-la animo_fw-la or_o for_o promote_a popery_n time_n will_v disclose_v that_o deride_z the_o scripture_n and_o deny_v the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n or_o that_o there_o be_v any_o devil_n or_o be_v any_o hell_n 8._o the_o libertine_n that_o will_v have_v liberty_n for_o all_o that_o they_o can_v call_v religion_n though_o against_o the_o certain_a principle_n of_o christianity_n and_o that_o tell_v we_o the_o magistrate_n have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o man_n religion_n of_o which_o anon_o 9_o the_o democratical_a politition_n that_o be_v busy_a about_o the_o change_n of_o government_n and_o will_v bring_v all_o into_o confusion_n under_o pretence_n of_o the_o people_n liberty_n or_o power_n and_o will_v have_v the_o major_a part_n of_o the_o subject_n to_o be_v the_o sovereign_n of_o the_o rest_n that_o be_v the_o worst_a that_o be_v still_o the_o most_o and_o the_o ignorant_a that_o can_v rule_v themselves_o and_o the_o vicious_a that_o be_v enemy_n and_o hinderer_n of_o piety_n and_o the_o worldling_n that_o mind_n nothing_o but_o what_o be_v under_o their_o foot_n and_o have_v no_o time_n to_o think_v of_o heaven_n they_o have_v so_o much_o to_o do_v on_o earth_n and_o as_o augustine_n say_v have_v rather_o there_o be_v one_o star_n less_o in_o heaven_n than_o one_o cow_n loss_n in_o their_o pasture_n these_o must_v be_v our_o sovereign_n 10._o those_o that_o under_o pretence_n of_o defend_v prelacy_n and_o of_o unite_n we_o with_o rome_n do_v adhere_v to_o the_o course_n of_o grotius_n and_o sancta_fw-la clara_n and_o unchurch_n all_o the_o reform_a church_n degrade_v all_o the_o minister_n that_o be_v not_o of_o their_o way_n while_o they_o maintain_v the_o verity_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o validity_n of_o her_o ordination_n and_o will_v have_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v the_o principium_fw-la unitatis_fw-la to_o all_o the_o church_n and_o the_o western_a part_n to_o obey_v he_o as_o their_o patriatch_n yea_o and_o himself_n to_o be_v the_o ruler_n of_o the_o whole_a so_o he_o do_v it_o by_o the_o law_n of_o general_a council_n and_o deprive_v not_o inferior_a bishop_n of_o their_o privilege_n these_o ten_o sort_n of_o man_n we_o be_v jealous_a of_o and_o if_o ever_o you_o advance_v they_o into_o place_n of_o command_n or_o power_n it_o will_v increase_v our_o jealousy_n god_n know_v i_o have_v no_o personal_a grudge_n to_o any_o of_o they_o but_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n and_o the_o hope_n of_o our_o posterity_n be_v not_o so_o contemptible_a as_o to_o be_v give_v away_o as_o a_o bribe_n to_o purchase_v these_o man_n good_a will_n or_o to_o stop_v their_o mouth_n lest_o they_o shall_v reproach_v we_o as_o it_o be_v the_o common_a but_o a_o poor_a redress_n that_o after_o the_o massacre_n of_o thousand_o the_o survive_a protestant_n have_v still_o have_v from_o the_o papist_n viz._n to_o disclaim_v the_o fact_n or_o cast_v it_o upon_o some_o rash_a discontent_a man_n which_o will_v not_o make_v dead_a man_n alive_a again_o so_o will_v it_o be_v a_o poor_a relief_n to_o we_o when_o these_o man_n be_v our_o master_n and_o have_v deprive_v we_o of_o all_o that_o be_v dear_a to_o we_o in_o the_o world_n that_o we_o escape_v their_o ill_a language_n while_o the_o work_n be_v do_v 4._o we_o also_o humble_o beseech_v you_o that_o you_o will_v go_v on_o with_o the_o purge_n and_o encourage_v of_o the_o ministry_n cast_v out_o the_o ignorant_a and_o ungodly_a and_o countenance_v those_o that_o be_v able_a and_o faithful_a they_o deny_v their_o ease_n and_o dignity_n and_o the_o riches_n of_o the_o world_n which_o other_o employment_n will_v afford_v to_o encounter_v with_o satan_n and_o the_o world_n corruption_n for_o the_o happiness_n of_o soul_n and_o therefore_o the_o more_o oppose_v they_o and_o revile_v they_o and_o unthankful_o requite_v they_o the_o more_o be_v you_o oblige_v for_o the_o sake_n of_o christ_n and_o man_n salvation_n to_o assist_v they_o all_o their_o enemy_n contend_v to_o surpass_v the_o devil_n in_o impudence_n accuse_v they_o of_o covetousness_n idleness_n and_o ambition_n as_o if_o these_o be_v the_o thing_n that_o they_o seek_v after_o in_o the_o world_n if_o our_o practice_n second_v our_o profession_n be_v not_o enough_o to_o confute_v these_o calumny_n of_o malignant_a man_n let_v this_o be_v add_v to_o confute_v they_o that_o we_o make_v it_o our_o earnest_a request_n to_o your_o highness_n that_o all_o such_o ambitious_a idle_a covetous_a or_o otherwise_o scandalous_a minister_n may_v be_v cast_v out_o you_o have_v commissioner_n in_o every_o county_n for_o this_o work_n require_v they_o to_o do_v it_o faithful_o if_o we_o desire_v this_o much_o against_o our_o reproacher_n they_o will_v say_v we_o persecute_v they_o we_o desire_v you_o therefore_o but_o to_o turn_v this_o persecution_n against_o ourselves_o we_o also_o desire_v you_o that_o you_o will_v not_o advance_v we_o to_o temporal_a honour_n or_o dignity_n or_o power_n nor_o make_v we_o lord_n bishop_n nor_o to_o abound_v with_o the_o riches_n of_o this_o world_n these_o thing_n agree_v not_o with_o our_o cal_n we_o only_o desire_v food_n and_o raiment_n and_o necessary_n to_o furnish_v we_o for_o our_o work_n and_o express_v some_o charity_n to_o the_o needy_a that_o daily_o expect_v it_o from_o we_o and_o we_o crave_v of_o you_o that_o we_o may_v be_v no_o rich_a we_o also_o desire_v you_o never_o to_o put_v the_o sword_n into_o our_o hand_n nor_o enable_v we_o to_o execute_v any_o of_o our_o private_a passion_n upon_o any_o nor_o yet_o to_o touch_v man_n body_n or_o estate_n but_o only_o to_o manage_v the_o word_n and_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n upon_o man_n conscience_n and_o guide_v his_o church_n according_a to_o our_o office_n and_o let_v it_o prevail_v as_o god_n shall_v bless_v it_o this_o be_v all_o the_o advancement_n we_o desire_v we_o have_v double_o renounce_v all_o the_o world_n as_o christian_n and_o as_o minister_n of_o christ_n we_o have_v give_v up_o ourselves_o to_o a_o difficult_a flesh-displeasing_a work_n we_o crave_v no_o more_o of_o you_o but_o so_o far_o to_o countenance_v we_o as_o christ_n command_v you_o and_o the_o good_a of_o our_o people_n soul_n require_v and_o god_n will_v be_v judge_n between_o we_o and_o our_o malicious_a reproacher_n whether_o these_o request_n be_v covetous_a ambitious_a or_o unreasonable_a 5._o we_o also_o humble_o crave_v your_o aid_n for_o the_o procure_n and_o maintain_v a_o union_n and_o concord_n
columbanus_n the_o abbot_n come_v into_o france_n that_o the_o scot_n do_v nothing_o differ_v from_o the_o britain_n in_o their_o conversation_n for_o bishop_n daganus_n come_v to_o we_o refuse_v not_o only_o to_o eat_v with_o we_o but_o even_o to_o eat_v in_o the_o same_o house_n where_o we_o do_v eat_v usher_n epist_n hibern_n 7._o p._n 18._o our_o most_o peaceable_a bishop_n hall_n be_v force_v to_o write_v a_o roma_fw-la irreconciliabilis_fw-la while_o we_o be_v think_v of_o reconciliation_n they_o be_v about_o our_o ear_n with_o plot_n and_o violence_n and_o with_o swarm_n of_o rome-bred_n sect_n and_o be_v day_n and_o night_n industrious_o undermine_v we_o so_o that_o by_o their_o continual_a alarm_n i_o be_o call_v off_o to_o these_o defensive_a war_n which_o here_o i_o have_v undertake_v yet_o still_o resolve_v that_o the_o desperateness_n of_o the_o cure_n shall_v not_o make_v i_o run_v from_o they_o into_o a_o contrary_a extreme_a nor_o be_v out_o of_o the_o way_n of_o peace_n nor_o neglect_v any_o necessary_a mean_n how_o hopeless_a soever_o of_o success_n the_o work_n that_o here_o i_o have_v undertake_v be_v 1._o to_o give_v you_o brief_o those_o ground_n on_o which_o you_o must_v go_v if_o you_o will_v keep_v your_o ground_n against_o a_o papist_n 2._o to_o give_v a_o few_o invincible_a argument_n which_o the_o weak_a may_v be_v able_a to_o use_v to_o overthrow_v the_o principal_a ground_n of_o the_o papist_n 3._o to_o detect_v their_o fraud_n and_o give_v to_o the_o young_a sort_n of_o minister_n sufficient_a direction_n for_o the_o confutation_n of_o all_o the_o papist_n in_o the_o world_n 4._o to_o propound_v though_o in_o vain_a such_o term_n of_o peace_n as_o we_o can_v yield_v to_o chap._n ii_o before_o i_o mention_v the_o ground_n or_o cause_n that_o you_o must_v maintain_v i_o must_v premise_v this_o advice_n to_o the_o common_a people_n 1._o wrong_n not_o the_o truth_n and_o yourselves_o by_o a_o unequal_a conflict_n enter_v not_o rash_o upon_o dispute_n with_o those_o that_o be_v learned_a and_o of_o nimble_a tongue_n if_o you_o be_v ignorant_a or_o of_o weak_a capacity_n yourselves_o though_o i_o shall_v here_o show_v you_o that_o scripture_n church_n tradition_n reason_n and_o sense_n be_v on_o your_o side_n yet_o experience_n tell_v we_o how_o the_o word_n of_o juggler_n have_v make_v million_o of_o man_n deny_v belief_n to_o their_o eye_n their_o taste_n and_o other_o sense_n a_o ignorant_a man_n be_v soon_o silence_v by_o a_o subtle_a wit_n and_o many_o think_v that_o when_o they_o can_v answer_v they_o must_v yield_v though_o they_o deny_v both_o sense_n and_o reason_n by_o it_o if_o any_o of_o they_o secret_o entice_v you_o desire_v they_o to_o debate_v the_o case_n with_o some_o able_a learned_a experience_a minister_n in_o your_o hear_n it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o your_o pastor_n to_o defend_v you_o from_o the_o wolf_n if_o you_o once_o despise_v they_o or_o straggle_v from_o they_o and_o the_o flock_n and_o trust_v to_o your_o own_o reason_n that_o be_v unfurnished_v and_o unprepared_a for_o such_o work_n you_o may_v take_v that_o you_o get_v by_o it_o if_o you_o be_v undo_v you_o need_v the_o help_n of_o pastor_n for_o your_o soul_n as_o well_o as_o of_o physician_n for_o your_o body_n and_o lawyer_n for_o your_o estate_n or_o else_o god_n will_v never_o have_v set_v they_o over_o you_o in_o his_o church_n let_v they_o but_o come_v on_o equal_a term_n and_o you_o shall_v see_v what_o truth_n can_v do_v in_o this_o way_n we_o will_v not_o avoid_v a_o conference_n with_o any_o of_o they_o but_o alas_o with_o ignorant_a unlearned_a people_n what_o may_v not_o such_o deceiver_n do_v that_o can_v persuade_v so_o many_o thousand_o soul_n to_o give_v no_o credit_n to_o their_o own_o eye_n or_o taste_v or_o feeling_n but_o to_o believe_v a_o priest_n that_o bread_n be_v not_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v not_o wine_n 2._o yet_o i_o will_v have_v the_o weak_a to_o endeavour_v to_o understand_v the_o reason_n of_o their_o profession_n and_o to_o be_v able_a to_o repel_v deceiver_n and_o to_o that_o end_n i_o shall_v here_o give_v you_o first_o some_o direction_n concern_v the_o cause_n which_o you_o must_v defend_v and_o concern_v this_o observe_v these_o thing_n follow_v 1._o understand_v what_o the_o religion_n be_v that_o you_o must_v hold_v and_o maintain_v it_o be_v the_o ancient_a christian_a religion_n do_v not_o put_v every_o truth_n among_o the_o essential_o of_o your_o religion_n our_o religion_n do_v not_o stand_v or_o fall_v with_o every_o controversy_n that_o be_v raise_v about_o it_o that_o which_o be_v the_o true_a religion_n in_o the_o apostle_n day_n be_v we_o now_o that_o which_o all_o be_v baptize_v into_o the_o profession_n of_o and_o the_o church_n open_o hold_v forth_o as_o their_o belief_n reformation_n bring_v we_o not_o a_o new_a religion_n but_o cleanse_v the_o old_a from_o the_o dross_n of_o popery_n which_o by_o innovation_n they_o have_v bring_v in_o a_o man_n that_o can_v confute_v a_o papist_n may_v yet_o be_v a_o christian_n and_o so_o hold_v fast_o the_o true_a religion_n it_o follow_v not_o that_o our_o religion_n be_v questionable_a or_o unsafe_a if_o some_o point_n in_o controversy_n between_o they_o and_o we_o be_v questionable_a or_o hard_a the_o papist_n will_v fain_o bring_v you_o to_o believe_v that_o our_o religion_n must_v lie_v upon_o some_o of_o these_o controversy_n but_o it_o be_v no_o such_o matter_n perhaps_o you_o will_v say_v that_o then_o it_o be_v not_o about_o religion_n that_o we_o differ_v from_o they_o i_o answer_v yes_o it_o be_v about_o the_o essential_o of_o their_o religion_n but_o it_o be_v but_o for_o the_o preserve_v the_o integrity_n of_o we_o against_o the_o consequence_n and_o addition_n of_o they_o they_o have_v make_v they_o a_o new_a religion_n which_o we_o call_v popery_n and_o join_v this_o to_o the_o old_a religion_n which_o we_o call_v christianity_n now_o we_o stick_v to_o the_o old_a religion_n alone_o and_o therefore_o there_o be_v more_o essential_a to_o their_o religion_n then_o be_v to_o we_o so_o that_o our_o own_o religion_n even_o the_o ancient_a christianity_n be_v out_o of_o controversy_n between_o we_o the_o papist_n do_v confess_v that_o the_o creed_n the_o lord_n prayer_n the_o ten_o commandment_n be_v true_a yea_o that_o all_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o certain_o true_a so_o that_o our_o religion_n be_v grant_v we_o as_o past_a dispute_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v only_o the_o papist_n religion_n that_o be_v in_o question_n between_o we_o and_o not_o we_o if_o you_o will_v make_v those_o low_a truth_n to_o be_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o your_o religion_n which_o be_v not_o you_o will_v give_v the_o papist_n the_o advantage_n which_o they_o desire_v 2._o if_o the_o papist_n call_v for_o a_o rule_n or_o test_n of_o your_o religion_n and_o ask_v you_o where_o they_o may_v find_v it_o assign_v they_o to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o not_o to_o any_o confession_n of_o church_n further_o than_o as_o they_o agree_v with_o that_o we_o know_v of_o no_o divine_a rule_n and_o law_n of_o faith_n and_o life_n but_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o heart_n of_o believer_n have_v a_o imperfect_a transcript_n of_o they_o the_o confession_n of_o church_n be_v but_o part_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n or_o collection_n out_o of_o they_o contain_v the_o point_n of_o great_a weight_n and_o if_o in_o phrase_n or_o order_n much_o more_o in_o matter_n there_o be_v any_o thing_n humane_a we_o make_v it_o not_o our_o rule_n nor_o be_v we_o bind_v to_o make_v it_o good_a no_o more_o than_o the_o write_n of_o godly_a man_n a_o point_n be_v not_o therefore_o with_o we_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n because_o our_o church_n or_o a_o synod_n put_v it_o into_o a_o confession_n but_o because_o it_o be_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o a_o council_n determination_n do_v with_o we_o differ_v but_o gradual_o from_o the_o judgement_n of_o a_o single_a man_n in_o this_o respect_n and_o therefore_o we_o give_v they_o the_o scripture_n only_o as_o the_o full_a doctrine_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o the_o perfect_a law_n of_o god_n and_o those_o point_n in_o it_o which_o life_n or_o death_n be_v lay_v upon_o and_o god_n have_v tell_v we_o we_o can_v be_v save_v without_o we_o take_v as_o the_o essential_o of_o our_o religion_n and_o the_o rest_n as_o the_o integral_n only_o if_o they_o ask_v why_o then_o we_o do_v draw_v up_o confession_n of_o faith_n i_o answer_v 1._o to_o teach_v and_o help_v the_o people_n by_o gather_v to_o their_o hand_n the_o most_o necessary_a point_n and_o give_v they_o sometime_o a_o explication_n of_o they_o 2._o to_o let_v our_o accuser_n see_v that_o we_o misunderstand_v not_o the_o
will_n and_o what_o be_v that_o to_o the_o question_n o_o sir_n be_v it_o not_o the_o holy_a truth_n of_o god_n that_o you_o be_v about_o and_o shall_v you_o thus_o abuse_v it_o and_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n you_o know_v the_o question_n be_v whether_o sense_n and_o the_o intellect_n thereby_o be_v infallible_a in_o judge_v bread_n to_o be_v bread_n when_o we_o see_v feel_v and_o eat_v it_o have_v you_o never_o a_o word_n to_o say_v to_o this_o to_o persuade_v man_n that_o they_o have_v eye_n and_o see_v not_o and_o hand_n and_o feel_v not_o or_o that_o the_o world_n know_v not_o certain_o what_o they_o seem_v to_o know_v by_o see_v and_o feel_n i_o pray_v you_o hereafter_o deal_v by_o we_o as_o fair_o as_o bellarmine_n do_v and_o yet_o we_o will_v thank_v you_o for_o nothing_o who_o quite_o give_v away_o the_o roman_a cause_n by_o grant_v and_o plead_v that_o sense_n be_v infallible_a in_o positives_n and_o therefore_o we_o may_v thence_o say_v this_o be_v a_o body_n because_o i_o see_v it_o and_o so_o this_o be_v bread_n or_o wine_n because_o i_o see_v feel_v and_o taste_v it_o but_o not_o in_o negative_n and_o therefore_o we_o can_v say_v this_o be_v not_o a_o body_n because_o i_o see_v it_o not_o i_o pray_v you_o give_v over_o talk_v of_o the_o pope_n or_o church_n or_o religion_n or_o man_n if_o you_o be_v uncertain_a of_o substance_n which_o be_v suppose_v but_o per_fw-la accidentia_fw-la the_o object_n of_o your_o sense_n and_o take_v nothing_o ill_a that_o i_o write_v of_o you_o till_o you_o be_v more_o certain_a that_o you_o see_v it_o and_o know_v what_o you_o see_v 3._o but_o you_o will_v say_v sense_n and_o reason_n must_v here_o vail_v bonnet_n to_o faith_n answ_n in_o the_o negative_a case_n let_v it_o be_v grant_v and_o any_o case_n where_o faith_n can_v be_v faith_n but_o if_o sense_n and_o the_o intellect_n therewith_o be_v fallible_a in_o positives_n so_o that_o we_o can_v know_v bread_n when_o we_o see_v and_o eat_v it_o faith_n can_v be_v faith_n then_o what_o talk_v you_o of_o faith_n if_o you_o credit_v not_o the_o sound_a sense_n of_o all_o the_o man_n in_o the_o world_n when_o sense_n and_o reason_n be_v presuppose_v to_o faith_n how_o know_v you_o that_o faith_n here_o contradict_v sense_n you_o will_v say_v because_o the_o church_n or_o scripture_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o bread_n but_o how_o know_v you_o that_o there_o be_v any_o such_o thing_n in_o scripture_n or_o that_o the_o church_n so_o hold_v you_o think_v you_o have_v read_v or_o hear_v it_o but_o how_o know_v you_o that_o your_o sense_n deceive_v you_o not_o he_o that_o can_v know_v bread_n when_o he_o see_v and_o eat_v it_o be_v unlikely_a to_o know_v letter_n and_o their_o meaning_n when_o he_o see_v they_o see_v more_o of_o my_o answer_n to_o such_o objection_n in_o a_o book_n entitle_v the_o safe_a religion_n p._n 241._o to_o 248._o the_o simple_a reader_n that_o have_v honesty_n and_o charity_n be_v secure_v against_o popery_n by_o the_o first_o argument_n which_o he_o may_v make_v good_a to_o his_o own_o soul_n against_o all_o the_o jesuit_n on_o earth_n and_o he_o that_o be_v unable_a to_o proceed_v on_o that_o account_n may_v by_o the_o evidence_n of_o this_o last_o argument_n confute_v any_o papist_n living_n if_o he_o be_v a_o man_n of_o sense_n and_o reason_n and_o have_v bring_v all_o our_o controversy_n so_o low_a that_o sense_n itself_o may_v be_v the_o judge_n i_o shall_v go_v no_o further_o in_o argument_n as_o think_v it_o vain_a to_o use_v any_o reason_n with_o that_o man_n that_o will_v not_o believe_v his_o own_o eyesight_n nor_o the_o sight_n and_o feeling_n and_o taste_v of_o all_o the_o world_n beside_o chap._n x._o i_o come_v now_o to_o the_o next_o and_o principal_a part_n of_o my_o task_n which_o be_v to_o open_a to_o you_o their_o deceit_n and_o give_v you_o direction_n for_o the_o discovery_n and_o confutation_n of_o they_o that_o by_o the_o help_n of_o these_o you_o may_v see_v the_o truth_n detect_v 1._o remember_v this_o ground_n which_o they_o have_v give_v you_o that_o if_o you_o prove_v they_o guilty_a but_o of_o any_o one_o error_n in_o point_n of_o belief_n determine_v by_o their_o church_n you_o thereby_o disprove_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o popery_n as_o such_o for_o you_o pull_v up_o the_o foundation_n which_o they_o build_v on_o and_o the_o authority_n into_o which_o they_o resolve_v their_o faith_n they_o will_v grant_v you_o that_o if_o they_o be_v deceive_v by_o the_o church_n in_o one_o thing_n they_o have_v no_o certainty_n of_o any_o thing_n upon_o the_o church_n credit_n so_o that_o if_o you_o read_v paul_n discourse_n against_o pray_v in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n or_o the_o many_o precept_n for_o our_o read_n and_o meditate_v in_o the_o law_n of_o god_n or_o the_o like_a and_o can_v but_o perceive_v that_o the_o popish_a latin_a service_n or_o their_o forbid_a man_n to_o read_v the_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n be_v contrary_a hereto_o or_o if_o you_o find_v out_o but_o any_o one_o of_o their_o error_n you_o can_v be_v a_o papist_n if_o you_o understand_v their_o profession_n but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o with_o we_o for_o though_o we_o know_v that_o the_o scripture_n and_o all_o that_o be_v in_o it_o be_v of_o infallible_a truth_n and_o that_o every_o true_a christian_n while_o such_o be_v infallible_a in_o the_o essential_o of_o christianity_n for_o else_o he_o be_v no_o christian_n yet_o we_o profess_v that_o we_o know_v but_o in_o part_n and_o that_o our_o own_o write_n and_o confession_n may_v possible_o in_o some_o thing_n be_v beside_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o there_o be_v much_o more_o propound_v in_o scripture_n to_o our_o faith_n than_o what_o be_v of_o absolute_a necessity_n to_o salvation_n we_o may_v possible_o after_o our_o study_v and_o pray_v mistake_n in_o some_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o of_o the_o essence_n but_o the_o integrity_n of_o christianity_n and_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o melius_fw-la esse_fw-la the_o strength_n or_o comfort_n though_o not_o to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o christian_n so_o that_o every_o error_n in_o their_o faith_n destroy_v their_o ground_n and_o so_o their_o new_a religion_n but_o so_o do_v not_o every_o error_n of_o we_o or_o to_o speak_v more_o distinct_o let_v we_o distinguish_v between_o the_o fides_n quae_fw-la &_o qua_fw-la their_o objective_a faith_n and_o our_o subjective_a faith_n 1._o their_o objective_a faith_n have_v error_n in_o it_o but_o we_o have_v none_o by_o their_o own_o confession_n for_o they_o be_v all_o the_o decree_n of_o their_o pope_n and_o council_n and_o we_o be_v only_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o they_o confess_v to_o be_v infallible_a our_o own_o write_n do_v but_o show_v how_o we_o understand_v the_o scripture_n and_o so_o whether_o our_o subjective_a faith_n be_v right_a or_o not_o 2._o we_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v not_o only_o possible_a but_o probable_a that_o we_o be_v mistake_v in_o some_o low_a point_n about_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o yet_o our_o foundation_n be_v still_o sure_a but_o they_o have_v in_o a_o sort_n confound_v their_o subiective_n and_o objective_a faith_n and_o one_o believe_v it_o on_o that_o account_n because_o other_o do_v believe_v it_o and_o so_o one_o age_n or_o part_n do_v but_o seek_v for_o the_o object_n of_o their_o faith_n in_o the_o actual_a faith_n of_o the_o other_o yea_o 3._o they_o conclude_v that_o every_o point_n which_o be_v of_o faith_n that_o be_v that_o be_v determine_v by_o the_o church_n to_o be_v so_o be_v of_o such_o necessity_n to_o salvation_n that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v that_o deny_v it_o or_o that_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o if_o sufficient_o propose_v but_o we_o be_v assure_v that_o though_o all_o that_o be_v in_o scripture_n be_v most_o true_a yet_o through_o misunderstanding_n some_o point_n there_o propose_v to_o our_o faith_n may_v possible_o be_v deny_v and_o dispute_v against_o by_o a_o true_a believer_n and_o yet_o his_o salvation_n not_o be_v overthrow_v by_o it_o the_o papist_n cry_v out_o against_o we_o for_o distinguish_v between_o the_o fundamental_o or_o essential_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o integral_n but_o we_o know_v it_o to_o be_v necessary_a chap._n xi_o detect_v 2._o when_o you_o have_v bring_v the_o matter_n thus_o far_o and_o see_v that_o if_o they_o have_v one_o error_n in_o faith_n their_o whole_a cause_n be_v lose_v then_o consider_v whether_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v so_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n and_o to_o itself_o to_o be_v free_a from_o all_o error_n 1._o how_o contrary_a it_o be_v to_o scripture_n 1._o to_o forbid_v the_o read_n of_o scripture_n in_o a_o know_a
follow_a age_n we_o will_v be_v try_v by_o they_o in_o the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o in_o the_o principal_a controversy_n we_o have_v with_o the_o papist_n yea_o but_o this_o will_v not_o serve_v their_o turn_n it_o be_v the_o present_a church_n that_o must_v judge_v or_o none_o for_o say_v they_o if_o the_o ancient_a church_n have_v power_n so_o have_v the_o present_a and_o if_o the_o ancient_a church_n have_v possession_n of_o the_o truth_n how_o shall_v we_o know_v it_o but_o by_o the_o present_a i_o answer_v 1._o we_o may_v know_v it_o by_o the_o record_n of_o those_o time_n far_o sure_a than_o by_o the_o report_n of_o man_n without_o writing_n controversy_n or_o numerous_a mysterious_a point_n be_v sorry_o carry_v in_o the_o memory_n especial_o of_o the_o most_o even_o of_o the_o teacher_n and_o for_o the_o record_n one_o diligent_a skilful_a man_n will_v know_v more_o than_o ten_o thousand_o other_o one_o baronius_n albaspinaeus_n petavius_n among_o the_o papist_n and_o one_o usher_n blondell_n salmasius_n gataker_n etc._n etc._n among_o the_o protestant_n know_v more_o of_o the_o mind_n of_o antiquity_n than_o a_o whole_a country_n beside_o or_o perhaps_o then_o some_o general_n council_n 2._o well!_o but_o if_o you_o appeal_v to_o the_o great_a number_n to_o they_o shall_v you_o go_v you_o must_v be_v try_v by_o the_o present_a church_n why_o then_o you_o be_v condemn_v be_v it_o the_o lesser_a number_n or_o the_o great_a or_o the_o better_a that_o must_v be_v judge_n you_o will_v not_o say_v the_o leser_fw-ge as_o such_o if_o you_o do_v you_o know_v where_o you_o be_v if_o you_o say_v the_o better_a part_n shall_v be_v judge_n who_o shall_v be_v judge_n which_o be_v the_o better_a part_n we_o be_v ready_a to_o prove_v the_o reform_a church_n the_o better_a part_n and_o if_o we_o do_v not_o we_o will_v give_v you_o the_o day_n and_o lose_v our_o cause_n but_o i_o suppose_v you_o will_v appeal_v to_o the_o great_a part_n content_a then_o the_o world_n know_v you_o be_v lose_v the_o greek_n moscovite_n armenian_n abassine_n and_o all_o other_o church_n in_o asia_n africa_n and_o europe_n be_v far_o more_o than_o the_o papist_n and_o your_o own_o pen_n and_o mouth_n tell_v we_o that_o these_o be_v against_o you_o many_o of_o they_o curse_v you_o as_o heretic_n or_o schismatic_n the_o rest_n of_o they_o know_v you_o not_o or_o refuse_v your_o government_n they_o all_o agree_v against_o your_o pope_n universal_a headship_n or_o sovereignty_n and_o so_o against_o the_o very_a form_n of_o your_o new_a catholic_n church_n so_o that_o the_o world_n know_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o christian_n on_o earth_n to_o be_v against_o you_o in_o the_o main_a so_o that_o you_o see_v what_o you_o get_v by_o appeal_n to_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o i_o know_v you_o will_v say_v that_o all_o these_o be_v schismatic_n or_o heretic_n and_o none_o of_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o they_o say_v as_o much_o by_o you_o some_o of_o they_o and_o all_o of_o they_o abhor_v your_o charge_n and_o how_o do_v you_o prove_v it_o and_o who_o shall_v be_v judge_n whether_o they_o or_o you_o be_v the_o catholic_n church_n you_o tell_v we_o of_o your_o succession_n and_o of_o twenty_o tale_n that_o be_v good_a if_o you_o may_v be_v judge_n yourselves_o but_o so_o do_v they_o say_v as_o much_o which_o be_v good_a if_o they_o be_v judge_n when_o we_o offer_v to_o dispute_v our_o case_n with_o you_o you_o ask_v we_o who_o shall_v be_v judge_n and_o tell_v we_o the_o catholic_n church_n must_v be_v judge_n but_o who_o shall_v be_v judge_n between_o you_o and_o they_o which_o be_v the_o catholic_n church_n you_o will_v not_o let_v we_o be_v judge_n in_o our_o own_o cause_n and_o why_o then_o shall_v you_o be_v we_o protestant_n the_o lesser_a number_n as_o to_o you_o so_o be_v you_o to_o all_o the_o rest_n that_o be_v against_o you_o and_o what_o reason_n have_v we_o to_o let_v the_o lesser_a number_n judge_n over_o the_o great_a if_o still_o you_o say_v because_o you_o be_v the_o better_a let_v that_o be_v first_o try_v but_o no_o reason_n you_o shall_v there_o also_o be_v the_o judge_n so_o that_o the_o case_n be_v plain_o come_v to_o this_o either_o the_o papist_n must_v stand_v to_o the_o great_a number_n and_o then_o the_o controversy_n be_v at_o end_n or_o they_o must_v shameful_o say_v we_o will_v not_o dispute_v with_o you_o unless_o we_o may_v be_v the_o judge_n ourselves_o though_o the_o few_o or_o else_o they_o must_v lay_v by_o their_o talk_n of_o a_o judge_n and_o dispute_v it_o equal_o with_o we_o by_o produce_v their_o evidence_n which_o we_o be_v ever_o ready_a for_o chap._n xviii_o detect_v 9_o the_o most_o common_a and_o prevalent_a deceit_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v by_o ambiguous_a term_n to_o deceive_v those_o that_o can_v force_v they_o to_o distinguish_v and_o to_o make_v you_o believe_v they_o mean_v one_o thing_n when_o they_o mean_v another_o and_o to_o mock_v you_o with_o cloudy_a word_n i_o shall_v here_o warn_v you_o to_o look_v to_o they_o therefore_o especial_o in_o three_o term_n on_o which_o much_o of_o their_o controversy_n lie_v that_o be_v the_o word_n church_n pope_n and_o council_n for_o there_o be_v but_o few_o understand_v what_o they_o mean_v by_o any_o one_o of_o these_o word_n 1._o when_o you_o come_v to_o dispute_v of_o the_o church_n with_o they_o see_v that_o you_o agree_v first_o under_o your_o hand_n of_o the_o definition_n of_o that_o church_n of_o which_o you_o dispute_v and_o when_o you_o call_v they_o to_o define_v it_o you_o will_v find_v they_o in_o a_o wood_n you_o will_v little_o think_v how_o many_o several_a thing_n it_o be_v that_o they_o call_v the_o church_n for_o example_n sometime_o they_o mean_v the_o whole_a body_n pastor_n and_o people_n but_o more_o common_o they_o mean_v only_o the_o pastor_n which_o be_v the_o far_o small_a part_n and_o sometime_o they_o mean_v the_o church_n real_a and_o sometime_o only_a the_o church_n representative_a as_o they_o call_v it_o in_o a_o general_n council_n but_o whether_o they_o mean_v the_o pastor_n or_o people_n they_o exclude_v all_o save_a the_o pope_n of_o his_o subject_n and_o so_o by_o the_o church_n mean_v but_o a_o part_n or_o sect_n sometime_o in_o the_o question_n about_o tradition_n some_o of_o the_o french_a take_v the_o church_n for_o the_o community_n as_o father_n deliver_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n to_o their_o child_n etc._n etc._n and_o sometime_o they_o take_v it_o in_o its_o political_a sense_n for_o a_o holy_a society_n consist_v of_o a_o visible_a head_n and_o member_n but_o then_o they_o agree_v not_o of_o that_o head_n some_o set_v the_o pope_n high_o and_o some_o the_o council_n but_o frequent_o they_o take_v the_o word_n church_n for_o the_o suppose_a head_n alone_o as_o in_o most_o question_n about_o infallibility_n judge_v of_o controversy_n expound_v scripture_n keep_v of_o tradition_n define_v point_n of_o faith_n etc._n etc._n they_o say_v the_o church_n must_v do_v these_o but_o common_o they_o mean_v the_o suppose_a head_n and_o one_o part_n mean_v a_o general_n council_n and_o the_o jesuit_n and_o italian_n and_o predominant_a part_n do_v mean_v only_o the_o pope_n so_o that_o when_o they_o talk_v of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n and_o call_v you_o to_o its_o judgement_n and_o boast_v of_o its_o infallibility_n you_o will_v little_o think_v it_o they_o mean_v all_o this_o while_n but_o one_o poor_a sinful_a man_n and_o such_o a_o man_n as_o sometime_o have_v be_v more_o unlearned_a than_o many_o of_o your_o school_n boy_n of_o twelve_o or_o fourteen_o year_n of_o age_n and_o sometime_o have_v be_v a_o murderer_n adulterer_n and_o if_o general_a council_n or_o the_o common_a vote_n may_v be_v believe_v a_o heretic_n a_o infidel_n a_o incarnate_a devil_n this_o man_n be_v their_o church_n as_o gretser_n bellarmine_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o that_o strain_n profess_v so_o that_o if_o you_o do_v but_o force_v they_o to_o define_v and_o explain_v what_o they_o mean_v by_o the_o church_n you_o will_v either_o cause_v they_o to_o open_v their_o nakedness_n or_o find_v they_o all_o to_o piece_n about_o the_o very_a subject_n of_o the_o dispute_n 2._o so_o also_o when_o they_o use_v the_o name_n of_o a_o pope_n in_o disputation_n make_v they_o explain_v themselves_o and_o tell_v you_o in_o a_o definition_n what_o they_o mean_v by_o a_o pope_n for_o though_o you_o will_v think_v this_o term_n be_v sufficient_o understand_v yet_o you_o shall_v find_v they_o utter_o at_o a_o loss_n and_o all_o to_o piece_n about_o it_o let_v we_o consider_v distinct_o of_o the_o efficient_a matter_n and_o form_n 1_o as_o to_o the_o efficient_a cause_n of_o their_o pope_n
but_o otherwise_o what_o be_v it_o to_o the_o faith_n or_o salvation_n of_o the_o world_n whether_o rome_n or_o any_o one_o of_o these_o be_v yet_o a_o true_a church_n or_o be_v cease_v i_o know_v not_o well_o whether_o there_o be_v any_o church_n at_o coloss_n or_o philippi_n or_o some_o other_o place_n that_o have_v then_o true_a church_n and_o do_v it_o therefore_o follow_v that_o i_o be_o not_o a_o true_a believer_n what_o will_v you_o say_v to_o such_o a_o fellow_n that_o shall_v argue_v thus_o concern_v other_o church_n as_o these_o man_n do_v of_o rome_n and_o say_v e._n g._n if_o philippi_n be_v a_o true_a church_n than_o england_n be_v no_o true_a church_n if_o it_o be_v not_o when_o do_v it_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o true_a church_n will_v you_o not_o answer_v he_o what_o be_v it_o to_o i_o whether_o philippi_n be_v a_o true_a church_n or_o not_o may_v not_o we_o and_o they_o be_v both_o true_a church_n how_o prove_v you_o that_o and_o whether_o it_o be_v cease_v or_o not_o cease_v do_v no_o what_o concern_v my_o faith_n or_o salvation_n further_o than_o as_o my_o charity_n be_v to_o be_v exercise_v towards_o they_o so_o say_v we_o of_o rome_n it_o be_v a_o true_a particular_a church_n in_o the_o apostle_n day_n and_o if_o it_o be_v still_o a_o true_a church_n what_o hinder_v but_o we_o may_v be_v so_o to_o but_o whether_o it_o be_v so_o or_o not_o be_v little_a to_o i_o it_o concern_v not_o my_o faith_n or_o salvation_n to_o know_v whether_o there_o be_v any_o such_o place_n as_o rome_n on_o earth_n or_o whether_o it_o be_v consume_v long_o ago_o if_o a_o man_n be_v so_o simple_a as_o to_o believe_v a_o report_n that_o rome_n be_v destroy_v by_o charles_n of_o bourbon_n and_o never_o inhabit_v or_o have_v a_o pope_n since_o he_o be_v but_o such_o a_o heretic_n as_o pope_n zachary_n and_o bishop_n boniface_n make_v of_o virgilius_n for_o hold_v there_o be_v antipode_n though_o further_o from_o the_o south_n 2._o and_o if_o you_o take_v the_o word_n church_n in_o the_o second_o sense_n for_o a_o diocesan_n or_o patriarchiall_a church_n or_o association_n of_o church_n suppose_v such_o form_n prove_v warrantable_a the_o same_o answer_n servee_v as_o to_o the_o first_o 3._o but_o to_o come_v to_o the_o true_a state_n of_o our_o controversy_n if_o by_o he_o true_a church_n you_o mean_a either_o of_o the_o two_o last_o that_o be_v 1._o the_o whole_a universal_a church_n or_o 2._o a_o mistress_n church_n that_o must_v rule_v all_o the_o rest_n it_o be_v never_o such_o a_o true_a church_n in_o paul_n day_n and_o therefore_o here_o we_o turn_v this_o argument_n of_o the_o papist_n against_o themselves_o if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v neither_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n nor_o the_o mistress_n of_o all_o other_o church_n when_o paul_n write_v his_o epistle_n to_o they_o than_o it_o be_v not_o so_o now_o nor_o aught_o to_o be_v so_o account_v but_o the_o former_a be_v prove_v 1._o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n then_o no_o man_n that_o be_v well_o in_o his_o wit_n can_v doubt_v that_o read_v what_o a_o church_n there_o be_v at_o jerusalem_n what_o a_o church_n at_o ephesus_n and_o philadelphia_n smyrna_n thyatira_n laodicea_n corinth_n and_o abundance_n more_o prove_v that_o all_o or_o any_o of_o these_o be_v part_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n if_o you_o can_v 2._o where_o do_v paul_n once_o name_v they_o either_o the_o catholic_n church_n or_o the_o mistress_n or_o ruler_n of_o all_o church_n or_o give_v the_o least_o hint_n of_o any_o such_o thing_n or_o mention_v any_o pope_n among_o they_o who_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v to_o take_v to_o be_v their_o sovereign_a head_n be_v it_o not_o a_o incredible_a thing_n that_o paul_n and_o all_o the_o apostle_n will_v forget_v to_o make_v any_o mention_n of_o this_o privilege_n or_o teach_v they_o how_o to_o use_v it_o or_o teach_v other_o church_n their_o duty_n in_o obey_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n if_o indeed_o they_o have_v be_v make_v the_o mistress_n church_n man_n that_o can_v believe_v what_o they_o list_v may_v say_v what_o they_o list_v but_o for_o my_o part_n i_o will_v never_o think_v so_o hardly_o of_o paul_n and_o all_o the_o apostle_n as_o to_o accuse_v they_o of_o so_o great_a oblivion_n or_o negligence_n and_o therefore_o i_o conclude_v rome_n be_v neither_o the_o universal_a church_n nor_o the_o mistress_n church_n then_o not_o many_o a_o age_n after_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o so_o to_o be_v account_v now_o so_o that_o you_o see_v how_o easy_o this_o silly_a argument_n show_v its_o shame_n but_o though_o it_o concern_v not_o our_o main_a question_n i_o shall_v tell_v they_o further_o that_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n must_v be_v distinguish_v from_o its_o new_a political_n form_n for_o the_o matter_n so_o many_o of_o its_o member_n as_o be_v true_a christian_n be_v part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o christ_n though_o not_o the_o whole_a and_o for_o the_o form_n 1._o there_o be_v the_o form_n of_o its_o several_a part_n and_o the_o form_n of_o the_o whole_a the_o form_n of_o any_o part_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o be_v congregation_n or_o particular_a church_n of_o true_a christiant_fw-la may_v make_v those_o part_n true_a church_n that_o be_v there_o may_v be_v many_o a_o true_a parish_n church_n that_o yet_o live_v under_o the_o papal_a yoke_n but_o as_o to_o the_o political_a form_n of_o their_o roman_a catholic_n church_n as_o it_o be_v a_o body_n head_v by_o one_o claim_v a_o universal_a monarchy_n so_o the_o form_n be_v false_a and_o antichristian_a and_o therefore_o the_o church_n as_o papal_a must_v be_v denominate_v from_o this_o form_n and_o can_v be_v no_o better_o and_o this_o be_v our_o true_a answer_n to_o the_o question_n whether_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o true_a church_n there_o be_v i_o doubt_v not_o among_o they_o many_o a_o thousand_o true_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o there_o may_v be_v true_a particular_a church_n among_o they_o have_v true_a pastor_n and_o christian_a people_n join_v for_o god_n worship_n though_o i_o doubt_v there_o be_v but_o few_o of_o they_o but_o do_v fearful_o pollute_v it_o and_o i_o be_o confident_a that_o salvation_n be_v much_o more_o rare_a and_o difficult_a with_o they_o than_o it_o be_v with_o the_o reform_a catholic_n yet_o that_o many_o among_o they_o be_v true_a christian_n and_o save_v i_o be_o full_o persuade_v especial_o when_o i_o have_v read_v such_o write_n as_o gerson_n guil._n parisiensis_fw-la ferus_fw-la kempis_n etc._n etc._n and_o i_o think_v the_o better_a of_o bellarmine_n himself_o for_o say_v of_o kempis_n the_o imitatione_n christi_fw-la ego_fw-la certe_fw-la ab_fw-la adolescentia_fw-la &_o usque_fw-la in_o senectam_fw-la hoc_fw-la opusculum_fw-la saepissime_fw-la volui_fw-la &_o revolvi_fw-la &_o semper_fw-la mihi_fw-la novum_fw-la apparuit_fw-la &_o nunc_fw-la etiam_fw-la mirifice_fw-la cordi_fw-la meo_fw-la sapit_fw-la bellarm._n de_fw-fr scripter_n eccl._n pag._n 298._o but_o the_o pope_n as_o a_o pretend_a universal_a monarch_n be_v a_o false_a head_n and_o consequent_o their_o papal_a church_n as_o such_o be_v a_o false_a antichristian_a church_n and_o no_o true_a church_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o by_o the_o way_n i_o conceive_v you_o be_v thus_o to_o understand_v a_o clause_n in_o a_o late_a oath_n of_o abjuration_n draw_v up_o by_o the_o last_o parliament_n to_o be_v offer_v to_o the_o papist_n viz._n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n that_o be_v 1._o not_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n but_o part_n of_o it_o as_o they_o be_v christian_n 2._o nor_o a_o true_a church_n at_o all_o as_o papal_a and_o so_o formal_o as_o the_o now_o romish_a church_n but_o all_o this_o be_v little_a to_o our_o main_a question_n chap._n xxiii_o detect_v 14._o another_o great_a endeavour_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v to_o edness_n unity_n consistency_n and_o setledness_n in_o religion_n but_o we_o be_v still_o at_o uncertainty_n and_o to_o seek_v incoherent_a not_o tie_v together_o by_o any_o certain_a bond_n but_o still_o upon_o division_n and_o upon_o change_n and_o they_o instance_n thus_o a_o while_n ago_o you_o be_v episcopal_a and_o then_o presbyterian_a and_o now_o you_o be_v nothing_o but_o every_o one_o go_v his_o own_o way_n a_o while_n ago_o you_o worship_v god_n in_o one_o manner_n in_o baptise_v marry_v bury_v common_a prayer_n the_o lord_n supper_n and_o now_o you_o have_v all_o new_a where_o be_v the_o church_n of_o england_n now_o some_o of_o you_o be_v for_o one_o government_n and_o some_o for_o another_o the_o lutheran_n have_v superintendent_o the_o calvinist_n be_v presbyterian_o and_o what_o name_n of_o reproach_n do_v the_o episcopal_n
the_o commemoration_n of_o the_o holy_a life_n and_o suffering_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o the_o first_o sort_n of_o the_o ancient_n prayer_n for_o they_o begin_v here_o as_o the_o occasion_n 2._o we_o be_v for_o thankful_a acknowledgement_n of_o god_n mercy_n to_o the_o depart_a saint_n and_o to_o the_o church_n by_o they_o and_o the_o first_o prayer_n for_o they_o be_v such_o as_o these_o 3._o bishop_n usher_z have_v copious_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v saint_n suppose_v to_o be_v in_o heaven_n or_o paradise_n and_o not_o in_o purgatory_n that_o be_v then_o pray_v for_o and_o therefore_o that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o popish_a pray_v for_o torment_a soul_n that_o be_v then_o practise_v and_o therefore_o their_o prayer_n then_o be_v beside_o commemoration_n and_o thanksgiving_n the_o petition_v of_o all_o those_o follow_a mercy_n for_o they_o which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v receive_v till_o the_o resurrection_n bellarmine_n himself_o prove_v that_o though_o we_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o bless_a soul_n shall_v have_v a_o raise_v glorify_v body_n and_o be_v justify_v in_o the_o last_o judgement_n yet_o may_v it_o be_v pray_v for_o because_o it_o be_v yet_o future_a now_o we_o be_v far_o from_o be_v of_o another_o church_n or_o religion_n then_o those_o that_o hold_v such_o a_o opinion_n as_o this_o say_v usher_n pag._n 224._o when_o he_o have_v cite_v many_o testimony_n in_o these_o and_o other_o prayer_n of_o the_o like_a kind_n we_o may_v descry_v evident_a footstep_n of_o the_o primary_n intention_n of_o the_o church_n in_o her_o supplication_n for_o the_o dead_a which_o be_v that_o the_o whole_a man_n not_o the_o soul_n separate_v only_o may_v receive_v public_a remission_n of_o sin_n and_o a_o solemn_a acquittal_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o that_o great_a day_n and_o so_o obtain_v both_o a_o full_a escape_n from_o all_o the_o consequence_n of_o sin_n the_o last_o enemy_n be_v now_o destroy_v and_o death_n swallow_v up_o in_o victory_n and_o a_o perfect_a consummation_n of_o bliss_n and_o happiness_n all_o which_o be_v comprise_v in_o that_o short_a prayer_n of_o s._n paul_n for_o onesiphorus_n though_o make_v for_o he_o while_o he_o be_v alive_a the_o lord_n grant_v unto_o he_o that_o he_o may_v find_v mercy_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o that_o day_n yea_o divers_a prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a of_o that_o kind_n be_v still_o retain_v in_o the_o roman_a office_n of_o which_o the_o great_a spanish_a doctor_n john_n medina_n thus_o write_v although_o i_o have_v read_v many_o prayer_n for_o the_o faithful_a decease_a which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o roman_a missal_n yet_o have_v i_o read_v in_o none_o of_o they_o that_o the_o church_n do_v petition_n that_o they_o may_v more_o quick_o be_v free_v from_o pain_n but_o i_o have_v read_v that_o in_o some_o of_o they_o petition_n be_v make_v that_o they_o may_v be_v free_v from_o everlasting_a pain_n again_o there_o be_v other_o prayer_n say_v medina_n wherein_o petition_n be_v make_v that_o god_n will_v raise_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o dead_a in_o their_o body_n unto_o bliss_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n you_o see_v then_o that_o our_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o the_o dead_a may_v be_v pray_v for_o but_o what_o prayer_n may_v be_v make_v for_o they_o and_o therefore_o to_o find_v that_o about_o three_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n more_o or_o less_o man_n begin_v to_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a be_v no_o proof_n that_o they_o be_v not_o of_o our_o church_n or_o religion_n or_o that_o therefore_o we_o want_v succession_n it_o be_v not_o a_o pray_v to_o be_v soon_o out_o of_o purgatory_n that_o then_o be_v use_v as_o papist_n do_v but_o a_o pray_v for_o the_o mercy_n promise_v at_o the_o resurrection_n and_o thus_o we_o think_v it_o lawful_a to_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a be_v it_o not_o for_o the_o accidental_a evil_n that_o may_v follow_v with_o they_o that_o will_v misunderstand_v and_o abuse_v it_o and_o its_o further_a to_o be_v note_v that_o as_o pegna_fw-la stapleton_n and_o other_o confess_v the_o father_n greek_n and_o latin_a before_o mention_v do_v believe_v that_o man_n have_v not_o their_o perfect_a joy_n till_o the_o resurrection_n and_o therefore_o they_o have_v the_o far_o strong_a motive_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a and_o if_o protestant_n have_v not_o be_v partly_o of_o this_o mind_n save_o only_o that_o we_o put_v not_o the_o soul_n into_o hide_a receptacle_n nor_o anywhere_o but_o with_o christ_n bellarmine_n have_v not_o find_v so_o much_o occasion_n of_o that_o unworthy_a calumny_n against_o calvin_n for_o the_o word_n cite_v by_o he_o in_o his_o instit_n as_o if_o he_o deny_v the_o beatifical_a vision_n if_o not_o the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n even_o because_o he_o take_v not_o our_o bliss_n to_o be_v perfect_a till_o the_o resurrection_n but_o somewhat_o short_a of_o what_o we_o shall_v then_o be_v now_o see_v the_o father_n be_v so_o common_o of_o that_o mind_n and_o the_o greek_n and_o aethiopian_n be_v still_o of_o that_o mind_n and_o bellarmine_n say_v luther_n and_o calvin_n be_v of_o that_o mind_n you_o may_v see_v that_o neither_o in_o that_o nor_o the_o point_n of_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a as_o use_v by_o the_o ancient_n be_v our_o distance_n so_o great_a as_o to_o weaken_v the_o proof_n of_o our_o succession_n or_o make_v we_o to_o be_v of_o two_o church_n or_o religion_n and_o here_o you_o may_v see_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a which_o be_v use_v by_o the_o papist_n and_o by_o the_o eastern_a church_n to_o this_o day_n and_o yet_o if_o upon_o private_a unsound_a opinion_n any_o shall_v go_v somewhat_o further_o in_o this_o point_n it_o follow_v not_o that_o such_o error_n change_v the_o faith_n i_o desire_v the_o reader_n that_o will_v have_v a_o full_a sight_n of_o the_o face_n of_o antiquity_n in_o this_o point_n to_o read_v bishop_n usher_n of_o it_o in_o the_o forementioned_a answer_n to_o the_o jesuit_n 3._o another_o point_n that_o they_o much_o challenge_v we_o about_o be_v the_o veneration_n or_o adoration_n of_o image_n relic_n and_o the_o cross_n to_o which_o i_o may_v join_v peregrination_n to_o place_n esteem_v by_o they_o to_o be_v of_o eminent_a holiness_n concern_v peregrination_n you_o may_v see_v by_o a_o plain_a epistle_n of_o gregory_n nyssen_n in_o the_o end_n of_o his_o print_a work_n but_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o a_o m._n s._n in_o paris_n library_n write_v purposely_o against_o go_v on_o pilgrimage_n to_o jerusalem_n what_o be_v to_o be_v think_v of_o this_o he_o advise_v even_o the_o retire_a monastic_o even_o in_o those_o country_n that_o be_v near_o judaea_n to_o forbear_v such_o pilgrimage_n as_o dangerous_a and_o unnecessary_a and_o not_o at_o all_o command_v in_o the_o scripture_n the_o papist_n do_v as_o long_o as_o they_o can_v persuade_v the_o world_n that_o this_o epistle_n be_v none_o of_o gregory_n and_o when_o they_o be_v make_v ashamed_a of_o that_o they_o will_v expound_v it_o as_o prohibit_v pilgrimage_n to_o none_o but_o the_o monastic_o and_o sure_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v forbid_v they_o then_o much_o more_o shall_v other_o be_v forbid_v that_o have_v not_o the_o leisure_n and_o pretend_v not_o to_o the_o devotion_n which_o these_o pretend_v to_o read_v but_o the_o epistle_n itself_o without_o either_o molinaeus_n his_o note_n on_o our_o side_n or_o gretser_n frivolous_a answer_n and_o judge_v as_o thou_o see_v cause_n as_o for_o image_n we_o allow_v the_o historical_a use_n of_o they_o and_o the_o set_v they_o up_o in_o church_n the_o lutheran_n allow_v and_o we_o dislike_v it_o only_o as_o dangerous_a and_o a_o needless_a snare_n but_o take_v not_o ourselves_o to_o be_v of_o another_o church_n or_o religion_n from_o those_o that_o be_v otherwise_o mind_v no_o nor_o from_o those_o that_o reverence_n they_o as_o they_o respect_v the_o person_n who_o they_o signify_v but_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o use_v image_n and_o another_o thing_n to_o use_v they_o popish_o which_o be_v to_o make_v they_o mediate_v object_n of_o divine_a worship_n yea_o to_o worship_n the_o very_a image_n itself_o and_o the_o cross_n and_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n with_o the_o same_o worship_n as_o we_o do_v he_o that_o be_v signify_v by_o they_o so_o that_o we_o confident_o affirm_v 1._o that_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v make_v no_o use_n of_o image_n at_o all_o in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n no_o nor_o endure_v they_o in_o the_o place_n of_o worship_n 2._o that_o when_o they_o be_v first_o bring_v in_o the_o popish_a use_n of_o they_o be_v still_o renounce_v and_o detest_v clemens_n alexandrinus_n protreptic_a ad_fw-la gent._n say_v that_o we_o be_v plain_o forbid_v to_o use_v that_o deceitful_a art_n of_o paint_v or_o image-making_a and_o we_o have_v no_o
colo_fw-la etc._n etc._n 1_o worship_v neither_o the_o image_n nor_o a_o spirit_n in_o it_o but_o by_o the_o bodily_a likeness_n i_o behold_v the_o sign_n of_o that_o which_o i_o ought_v to_o worship_n yea_o that_o many_o of_o they_o renounce_v the_o worship_v of_o devil_n appear_v by_o augustine_n report_n of_o their_o word_n in_o psal_n 96._o non_fw-la colimus_fw-la mala_fw-la daemonia_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o worship_v not_o evil_a spirit_n it_o be_v those_o that_o you_o call_v angel_n that_o we_o worship_v who_o be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o great_a god_n and_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o great_a god_n to_o who_o austin_n answer_v will_v you_o will_v worship_v they_o that_o be_v honour_v they_o aright_o than_o you_o will_v easy_o learn_v of_o they_o not_o to_o worship_v they_o and_o doubtless_o few_o can_v be_v so_o silly_a as_o to_o think_v there_o be_v as_o many_o jupiter_n or_o apollo_n as_o there_o be_v image_n of_o they_o in_o the_o world_n so_o that_o you_o see_v here_o that_o some_o of_o the_o pagan_n as_o to_o image-worship_n disclaim_v that_o which_o the_o papist_n ascribe_v to_o they_o viz._n divine_a worship_n oh_o but_o say_v h._n t._n tell_v we_o not_o of_o particular_a doctor_n but_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n church_n answ_n what_o not_o of_o saint_n thomas_n what!_o not_o of_o the_o army_n of_o school_n divine_v before_o mention_v what!_o not_o of_o the_o communis_fw-la sententia_fw-la theologorum_fw-la the_o common_a judgement_n of_o divine_n for_o so_o they_o call_v it_o what_o not_o of_o that_o which_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la or_o consonant_n to_o it_o and_o who_o contrary_a be_v heresy_n or_o savour_v of_o heresy_n as_o they_o say_v of_o durandus_fw-la opinion_n what_o not_o of_o pope_n clement_n the_o eight_o and_o the_o roman_a pontifical_a pag._n 672._o wonderful_a be_v all_o these_o no_o body_n in_o your_o church_n o_o admirable_a harmony_n that_o be_v in_o your_o unite_a church_n but_o you_o can_v agree_v to_o leave_v out_o the_o second_o commandment_n lest_o the_o very_a word_n shall_v deter_v the_o people_n from_o image_n worship_n and_o to_o make_v a_o irrational_a division_n of_o the_o ten_o to_o blind_v their_o eye_n and_o yet_o you_o cry_v up_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n when_o you_o be_v fain_o to_o hide_v one_o of_o the_o ten_o commandment_n so_o that_o thousand_o of_o your_o poor_a seduce_a follower_n know_v not_o that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o thing_n no_o wonder_n if_o you_o cast_v away_o gregory_n nyssen'_n epistle_n against_o pilgrimage_n and_o epiphanius_n his_o word_n in_o the_o end_n of_o his_o epistle_n to_o johan_n herosol_n against_o image_n and_o if_o vasquez_n in_o 3_o thom._n disp_n 105._o c._n 3._o contrary_a to_o the_o plain_a word_n do_v fain_o that_o it_o be_v the_o image_n of_o a_o profane_a or_o common_a man_n that_o epiphanius_n pull_v down_o and_o al._n cope_n dial._n 5._o c._n 21._o say_v that_o the_o epistle_n be_v counterfeit_a and_o not_o epiphanius_n and_o if_o bellarmine_n de_fw-la imag._n c._n 9_o and_o baronius_n ad_fw-la a_o 392._o say_v that_o this_o part_n of_o the_o epistle_n be_v forge_v and_o if_o alphons_n a_o castro_n cont_n haeres_fw-la de_fw-fr imag._n reproach_n epiphanius_n for_o it_o as_o a_o iconoclast_n so_o well_o be_v you_o agree_v also_o in_o the_o confutation_n of_o the_o father_n testimony_n that_o any_o way_n will_v serve_v your_o turn_n though_o each_o man_n have_v his_o several_a way_n fair_a fall_n vasquez_n that_o plain_o confess_v that_o indeed_o the_o scripture_n do_v forbid_v not_o only_o the_o worship_n of_o a_o image_n for_o god_n but_o also_o the_o worship_v of_o the_o true_a god_n in_o a_o image_n but_o say_v that_o this_o commandment_n be_v now_o repeal_v and_o therefore_o under_o the_o gospel_n we_o may_v do_v otherwise_o vasq_fw-la li._n 2._o de_fw-la adorat_fw-la disp_n 4._o c._n 3._o sect._n 74._o 75._o etc._n etc._n 4._o sect._n 84._o but_o of_o this_o point_n i_o shall_v say_v no_o more_o now_o but_o this_o 1._o many_o christian_a church_n do_v reject_v image_n from_o their_o church_n and_o worship_n as_o well_o as_o protestant_n 2._o more_o reject_v statue_n that_o reject_v not_o picture_n 3._o many_o that_o keep_v they_o worship_v not_o they_o nor_o god_n in_o they_o or_o by_o they_o as_o by_o a_o mediate_a object_n 4._o general_a council_n have_v be_v against_o image_n that_o want_v nothing_o but_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o make_v they_o of_o as_o good_a authority_n as_o the_o council_n that_o be_v for_o they_o 5._o that_o council_n that_o be_v for_o they_o nice_a 2._o condemn_v the_o schoolman_n and_o pope_n clement_n himself_o as_o heretic_n for_o worship_v they_o or_o the_o cross_n with_o divine_a worship_n 6._o i_o again_o urge_v any_o papist_n to_o answer_n dallaeus_n book_n rational_o that_o can_v 7._o to_o spare_v i_o the_o labour_n of_o say_v more_o of_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_n church_n against_o the_o popish_a use_n of_o image_n i_o desire_v the_o reader_n to_o peruse_v what_o cassander_n a_o honest_a papist_n have_v write_v to_o that_o end_n consultat_fw-la de_fw-fr imag._n et_fw-la simulac_fw-la who_o begin_v thus_o admetus_n imagine_v vero_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la quod_fw-la attinet_fw-la certum_fw-la est_fw-la initio_fw-la praedicati_fw-la evangelii_n aliquanto_fw-la tempore_fw-la inter_fw-la christianos_n praesertim_fw-la in_o ecclesiis_fw-la imaginum_fw-la usum_fw-la non_fw-la fuisse_fw-la ut_fw-la ex_fw-la clement_n &_o arnobio_n patet_fw-la tandem_fw-la picturas_fw-la in_o ecclesiam_fw-la admissas_fw-la ut_fw-la rerum_fw-la gestarum_fw-la historiam_fw-la exprimentes_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o he_o produce_v abundance_n from_o antiquity_n against_o the_o present_a popish_a use_n of_o they_o 4._o another_o point_n in_o which_o the_o papist_n pretend_v to_o better_a countenance_n from_o antiquity_n than_o we_o be_v the_o point_n of_o the_o corporal_a presence_n with_o transubstantiation_n but_o of_o this_o there_o be_v so_o much_o say_v by_o multitude_n of_o our_o divine_n that_o i_o shall_v now_o say_v no_o more_o but_o desire_v the_o studious_a to_o read_v at_o least_o bishop_n usher_v answ_n to_o the_o jesuit_n of_o it_o and_o edmundus_n abertinus_n de_fw-fr eucharistia_n a_o treatise_n so_o full_a of_o evidence_n from_o scripture_n reason_n and_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o father_n that_o i_o bold_o challenge_v all_o the_o papist_n in_o the_o world_n to_o give_v a_o tolerable_a answer_n to_o it_o that_o be_v a_o better_a than_o that_o be_v give_v when_o we_o have_v thus_o show_v they_o the_o stream_n of_o antiquity_n to_o have_v be_v against_o they_o they_o pass_v we_o by_o and_o thrust_v into_o the_o ignorant_a people_n hand_n a_o few_o musty_a scrap_n of_o abuse_a word_n which_o be_v answer_v and_o clear_v over_o and_o over_o thus_o do_v h._n t._n d._n baily_n and_o other_o 5._o in_o the_o point_n of_o satisfaction_n and_o purgatory_n beside_o what_o sadeel_n chamier_n and_o other_o have_v say_v usher_n and_o the_o foresay_a dallaeus_n in_o a_o full_a treatise_n have_v show_v the_o papist_n nakedness_n from_o antiquity_n so_o that_o modesty_n shall_v forbid_v they_o to_o pretend_v the_o father_n for_o they_o any_o more_o if_o any_o modesty_n be_v leave_v 6._o about_o their_o fast_n though_o that_o be_v no_o essential_a of_o religion_n both_o the_o time_n manner_n etc._n etc._n be_v so_o full_o speak_v to_o by_o the_o say_v dallaeus_n in_o another_o just_a volume_n de_fw-la jejuniis_fw-la that_o popery_n in_o this_o also_o be_v open_o condemn_v by_o the_o father_n in_o the_o view_n of_o the_o impartial_a considerate_a world_n the_o point_n of_o free_a will_n and_o most_o of_o the_o rest_n in_o which_o they_o imagine_v that_o we_o dissent_v from_o antiquity_n or_o the_o eastern_a church_n i_o have_v speak_v to_o already_o in_o my_o first_o book_n against_o popery_n i_o have_v think_v to_o have_v go_v through_o the_o rest_n particular_o at_o least_o the_o rest_n mention_v by_o h._n t._n and_o d._n baily_n but_o find_v they_o so_o frequent_o and_o full_o handle_v already_o i_o will_v forbear_v such_o labour_n in_o vain_a chap._n xxvi_o detect_v 17._o another_o of_o the_o papist_n deceit_n and_o one_o of_o the_o principal_a that_o they_o support_v their_o cause_n with_o be_v a_o false_a interpretation_n and_o application_n of_o all_o the_o say_n of_o the_o father_n which_o they_o can_v but_o force_v to_o a_o show_n of_o countenance_v their_o supremacy_n that_o you_o may_v find_v out_o their_o juggle_n in_o this_o i_o shall_v show_v you_o some_o of_o of_o their_o footstep_n more_o particular_o 1._o any_o claim_n that_o their_o own_o ambitious_a bishop_n have_v make_v to_o a_o further_a power_n than_o be_v due_a to_o they_o they_o use_v as_o a_o argument_n for_o their_o universal_a sovereignty_n when_o as_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o there_o be_v too_o much_o pride_n and_o ambition_n in_o their_o prelate_n
to_o these_o witness_n some_o more_o of_o your_o worthy_n august_n triumph_n de_fw-fr ancon_n q._n 5._o art_n 1._o say_v to_o make_v a_o new_a creed_n belong_v only_o to_o the_o pope_n because_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n by_o who_o authority_n all_o thing_n belong_v to_o faith_n be_v confirm_v and_o strengthen_v et_fw-la art_n 2._o as_o he_o may_v make_v a_o new_a creed_n so_o he_o may_v multiply_v new_a article_n upon_o article_n and_o in_o praefat._n sum_fw-la ad_fw-la johan_n 22._o he_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n power_n be_v infinite_a because_o the_o lord_n be_v great_a and_o his_o strength_n great_a and_o of_o his_o greatness_n there_o be_v no_o end_n and_o q._n 36._o ad_fw-la 6._o he_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n give_v the_o motion_n of_o direction_n and_o the_o sense_n of_o knowledge_n into_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n for_o in_o he_o we_o live_v and_o move_v and_o have_v our_o be_v and_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o consequent_o the_o pope_n will_n who_o be_v his_o vicar_n be_v the_o first_o and_o chief_a cause_n of_o all_o motion_n corporal_a and_o spiritual_a and_o then_o no_o doubt_n may_v change_v without_o blame_n abbas_n panormitan_n in_o cap._n c._n christus_fw-la de_fw-la haeret_fw-la n._n 2._o say_v the_o pope_n can_v bring_v in_o a_o new_a article_n of_o faith_n and_n petr._n de_fw-fr anchoran_n in_o idic_n the_o pope_n can_v make_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v such_o as_o now_o aught_o to_o be_v believe_v when_o before_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v turrecremat_n sum_fw-la de_fw-fr eccl._n lib._n 2._o cap._n 203._o say_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o measure_n and_o rule_n and_o science_n of_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v and_o august_n de_fw-fr ancona_n show_v we_o that_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n be_v not_o high_a than_o the_o pope_n but_o the_o same_o and_o that_o therefore_o no_o man_n may_v appeal_v from_o the_o pope_n to_o god_n qu._n 6._o art_n 1._o and_o therefore_o be_v not_o offend_v if_o we_o suppose_v you_o to_o have_v change_n a_o confutation_n of_o a_o popish_a manuscript_n on_o this_o point_n just_o as_o i_o be_v write_v this_o i_o receive_v another_o popish_a m._n s._n send_v from_o wolverhampton_n to_o sturbridge_n to_o which_o i_o shall_v return_v a_o answer_n before_o i_o go_v to_o the_o next_o point_n pap._n m._n s._n a_o argument_n for_o the_o church_n it_o will_v not_o be_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v once_o a_o most_o pure_a excellent_a flourish_a and_o mother_n church_n and_o her_o faith_n renown_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n rom._n 1._o 8._o &_o 6._o &_o 16._o whites_n def._n p._n 555._o king_n james_n speech_n to_o the_o parliament_n whitaker_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o dr._n sanders_n fulk_n cap._n 21._o thes_n 7._o reynolds_n in_o his_o five_o conclusion_n this_o church_n can_v not_o cease_v to_o be_v such_o but_o she_o must_v fall_v either_o by_o apostasy_n heresy_n or_o schism_n apostasy_n be_v not_o only_o a_o renounce_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n but_o of_o the_o name_n and_o title_n of_o christianity_n no_o man_n will_v say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v such_o a_o fall_n or_o fall_v so_o heresy_n be_v a_o adhesion_n or_o fast_o cleave_v to_o some_o private_a or_o singular_a opinion_n or_o error_n in_o faith_n contrary_a to_o the_o general_o approve_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v ever_o adhere_v to_o any_o singular_a or_o new_a opinion_n disagreeable_a to_o the_o common_a receive_v doctrine_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n i_o pray_v you_o satisfy_v i_o in_o these_o particular_n 1._o by_o what_o general_n council_n be_v she_o ever_o condemn_v 2._o which_o of_o the_o father_n ever_o write_v against_o she_o 3._o by_o what_o authority_n be_v she_o otherwise_o reprove_v for_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o thing_n very_o incongruous_a that_o so_o great_a a_o church_n shall_v be_v condemn_v by_o every_o private_a person_n who_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o condemn_v she_o schism_n be_v a_o departure_n or_o division_n from_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n whereby_o the_o bond_n and_o communion_n hold_v with_o some_o former_a church_n be_v break_v and_o dissolve_v if_o ever_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n divide_v herself_o from_o any_o body_n of_o faithful_a christian_n or_o break_v communion_n or_o go_v forth_o from_o the_o society_n of_o any_o elder_a church_n i_o pray_v you_o satisfy_v i_o in_o these_o particular_n 1._o who_o company_n do_v she_o leave_v 2._o from_o what_o body_n go_v she_o forth_o 3._o where_o be_v the_o true_a church_n she_o forsake_v for_o it_o appear_v not_o a_o little_a strange_a that_o a_o church_n shall_v be_v account_v schismatical_a when_o there_o can_v be_v assign_v any_o other_o church_n different_a from_o she_o which_o from_o age_n to_o age_n since_o christ_n time_n have_v continue_v visible_a from_o whence_o she_o depart_v thus_o far_o the_o papist_n manuscript_n a_o answer_n to_o the_o forego_n argument_n if_o the_o author_n of_o this_o argument_n think_v as_o he_o speak_v it_o be_v a_o case_n to_o be_v lament_v with_o tear_n of_o blood_n that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v abuse_v and_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n delude_v by_o man_n of_o so_o great_a ignorance_n but_o if_o he_o know_v that_o he_o do_v but_o juggle_v and_o deceive_v it_o be_v as_o lamentable_a that_o any_o matter_n of_o salvation_n shall_v fall_v into_o such_o hand_n 1._o this_o argument_n i_o have_v before_o answer_v detect_v 13._o the_o word_n church_n here_o be_v ambiguous_a and_o either_o signify_v 1._o a_o particular_a church_n which_o be_v a_o association_n of_o christian_n for_o personal_a communion_n in_o god_n worship_n 2._o or_o divers_a such_o association_n or_o church_n associate_v for_o communion_n by_o their_o officer_n or_o delegate_n for_o unity_n sake_n 3._o or_o else_o it_o may_v signify_v some_o one_o mistress_n church_n that_o be_v the_o ruler_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n in_o the_o world_n 4._o or_o else_o it_o may_v signify_v the_o universal_a catholic_n church_n itself_o which_o contain_v all_o the_o particular_a church_n in_o the_o world_n the_o papist_n shall_v not_o have_v play_v either_o the_o blind_a man_n or_o the_o juggler_n by_o confound_v these_o and_o never_o tell_v we_o which_o he_o mean_v 1._o for_o the_o first_o we_o grant_v he_o that_o rome_n be_v once_o a_o excellent_a flourish_a church_n and_o so_o be_v ephesus_n jerusalem_n philippi_n colosse_n and_o many_o more_o 2._o as_o to_o the_o second_o sense_n it_o be_v humane_a or_o from_o church_n custom_n so_o to_o take_v the_o word_n church_n for_o scripture_n that_o i_o find_v do_v not_o so_o use_v it_o but_o for_o the_o thing_n we_o be_v indifferent_a though_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o in_o scripture_n time_n rome_n have_v any_o more_o than_o a_o particular_a church_n yet_o it_o be_v all_o one_o as_o to_o our_o cause_n 3._o as_o to_o the_o three_o and_o four_o sense_n we_o deny_v as_o confident_o as_o we_o do_v that_o the_o sun_n be_v darkness_n that_o ever_o in_o scripture_n time_n rome_n be_v either_o a_o mother_n to_o all_o church_n or_o the_o ruler_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o or_o yet_o the_o universal_a church_n itself_o prove_v this_o and_o i_o will_v turn_v papist_n but_o there_o be_v not_o a_o word_n for_o it_o in_o the_o text_n cite_v but_o a_o intimation_n of_o much_o against_o it_o paul_n call_v rome_n a_o church_n and_o commend_v its_o faith_n true_o but_o do_v he_o not_o so_o by_o the_o thessalonian_n colossian_n ephesian_n philippian_n etc._n etc._n and_o john_n by_o the_o philadelphian_o pergamus_n thyatira_n and_o other_o as_o well_o and_o will_v not_o this_o prove_v that_o rome_n be_v but_o such_o a_o particular_a church_n as_o one_o of_o they_o the_o citation_n of_o protestant_n be_v do_v it_o seem_v by_o one_o that_o never_o read_v they_o nor_o will_v have_v other_o read_v they_o which_o make_v he_o turn_v we_o to_o whole_a book_n to_o search_v for_o they_o if_o we_o have_v nothing_o else_o to_o do_v and_o to_o miscit_v place_n but_o we_o know_v that_o all_o our_o divine_n confess_v that_o rome_n be_v once_o a_o true_a and_o famous_a particular_a church_n but_o never_o the_o universal_a church_n nor_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o world_n or_o of_o all_o other_o church_n in_o paul_n day_n will_v you_o dare_v lay_v your_o cause_n on_o this_o and_o put_v it_o to_o the_o trial_n why_o else_o do_v never_o paul_n make_v one_o word_n of_o mention_n of_o this_o power_n and_o honour_n nor_o send_v other_o church_n to_o she_o to_o be_v govern_v and_o now_o i_o pray_v consider_v to_o what_o purpose_n be_v the_o rest_n of_o your_o reason_n what_o be_v it_o to_o i_o whether_o rome_n be_v turn_v either_o
church_n constitution_n do_v infer_v that_o all_o that_o be_v due_o baptize_v be_v interpretative_o or_o implicit_o baptize_v into_o the_o pope_n 2._o and_o as_o you_o have_v devise_v a_o new_a catholic_n church_n so_o you_o hereby_o cast_v off_o and_o disow_v all_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o world_n that_o be_v not_o of_o your_o party_n determine_v it_o as_o de_fw-fr fide_fw-la that_o none_o of_o they_o can_v be_v save_v who_o yet_o have_v rather_o venture_v on_o your_o curse_n and_o censure_n then_o into_o your_o heresy_n and_o schism_n 3._o and_o hereby_o you_o fix_v yourselves_o in_o this_o schism_n and_o put_v we_o that_o unfeigned_o long_a for_o peace_n out_o of_o all_o hope_n of_o ever_o have_v peace_n with_o you_o because_o you_o will_v hearken_v to_o it_o on_o no_o term_n but_o that_o all_o man_n become_v subject_n to_o your_o usurp_a representative-christ_n which_o we_o dare_v as_o soon_o leap_v into_o the_o fire_n as_o do_v do_v you_o know_v now_o where_o the_o church_n or_o body_n be_v that_o you_o forsake_v it_o be_v all_o over_o the_o world_n where_o ever_o there_o be_v any_o christian_n be_v it_o not_o a_o great_a schism_n think_v you_o if_o a_o few_o anabaptist_n shall_v say_v we_o be_v the_o whole_a church_n and_o all_o other_o be_v heretic_n or_o schismatic_n or_o be_v it_o not_o a_o great_a schism_n of_o the_o donatist_n to_o arrogate_v that_o title_n to_o themselves_o and_o unchurch_n so_o many_o other_o and_o what_o church_n do_v they_o forsake_v augustine_n tell_v they_o over_o and_o over_o what_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v that_o they_o withdraw_v from_o even_o all_o true_a christian_n disperse_v over_o the_o earth_n or_o that_o church_n which_o begin_v at_o jerusalem_n and_o thence_o diffuse_v itself_o through_o the_o world_n but_o he_o never_o blame_v they_o for_o separate_v from_o the_o universal_a roman_a head_n or_o vicar_n but_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o a_o conspicuous_a combination_n of_o particular_a church_n optatus_n and_o he_o do_v blame_v they_o for_o withdraw_v as_o also_o from_o other_o church_n what_o if_o john_n of_o constantinople_n in_o prosecution_n of_o his_o title_n of_o universal_a patriarch_n have_v conclude_v as_o you_o that_o none_o in_o the_o world_n be_v christ_n member_n but_o his_o member_n nor_o of_o the_o church_n but_o his_o subject_n have_v not_o this_o be_v a_o notorious_a schism_n tell_v we_o then_o what_o church_n he_o have_v forsake_v and_o answer_v yourself_o but_o your_o last_o caution_n in_o a_o parenthesis_n do_v condemn_v yourselves_o what_o i_o must_v that_o church_n that_o be_v true_a be_v visible_a from_o christ_n time_n then_o as_o constantinople_n nor_o most_o other_o be_v never_o true_a church_n which_o be_v false_a so_o rome_n itself_o be_v never_o a_o true_a church_n which_o be_v false_a also_o do_v you_o think_v that_o there_o be_v a_o church_n at_o rome_n in_o christ_n time_n sure_o you_o be_v not_o so_o ignorant_a by_o this_o rule_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o true_a church_n but_o that_o at_o jerusalem_n and_o those_o in_o judaea_n but_o suppose_v you_o have_v say_v since_o the_o apostle_n time_n this_o also_o have_v exclude_v most_o church_n on_o earth_n but_o if_o you_o mean_v the_o universal_a church_n we_o grant_v you_o easy_o that_o it_o have_v be_v visible_a ever_o since_o christ_n time_n but_o not_o always_o in_o one_o place_n or_o country_n be_v not_o the_o great_a part_n of_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n who_o you_o schismatical_o unchurch_n a_o visible_a company_n doubtless_o you_o know_v they_o be_v yea_o the_o abassine_n and_o many_o church_n that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o roman_a empire_n do_v never_o so_o much_o as_o submit_v to_o your_o primacy_n of_o order_n nor_o have_v you_o ever_o any_o thing_n to_o do_v with_o they_o more_o than_o to_o own_v they_o as_o christian_n yet_o now_o be_v condemn_v by_o your_o arrogancy_n because_o they_o will_v not_o begin_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n to_o enter_v into_o a_o new_a church_n which_o they_o nor_o their_o forefather_n have_v ever_o any_o dependence_n on_o it_o be_v a_o shrewd_a answer_n of_o a_o old_a woman_n that_o the_o emperor_n of_o habassia_n mother_n give_v to_o gonzalus_n rodericus_fw-la the_o jesuit_n press_v she_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n or_o else_o she_o can_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o christ_n neque_fw-la ego_fw-la inquit_fw-la illa_fw-la neque_fw-la mei_fw-la sancto_fw-la petro_n obedientiam_fw-la negamus_fw-la in_fw-la eadem_fw-la nunc_fw-la sumus_fw-la fide_fw-la in_fw-la quae_fw-la fuimus_fw-la ab_fw-la initio_fw-la ea_fw-la si_fw-la recta_fw-la non_fw-la erat_fw-la cur_n per_fw-la tot_fw-la aetates_fw-la ac_fw-la secula_fw-la nemo_fw-la repertus_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la nos_fw-la errrante_n commonerent_fw-la i._n e._n we_o be_v in_o the_o same_o belief_n as_o we_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n if_o it_o be_v not_o right_a why_o do_v no_o man_n in_o so_o many_o age_n warn_v we_o of_o our_o error_n till_o now_o mark_v here_o a_o double_a argument_n couch_v against_o the_o pope_n one_o from_o tradition_n even_o apostolical_a tradition_n for_o godignus_n himself_o say_v that_o no_o man_n doubt_n but_o ethiopia_n receive_v the_o faith_n from_o the_o beginning_n even_o from_o the_o the_o eunuch_n and_o st._n matthew_n the_o other_o be_v that_o sure_a that_o pope_n that_o can_v in_o so_o many_o age_n look_v after_o his_o flock_n no_o not_o so_o much_o as_o to_o send_v one_o man_n to_o tell_v they_o that_o they_o err_v till_o about_o one_o thousand_o five_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n be_v never_o intend_v by_o christ_n to_o be_v the_o universal_a governor_n of_o the_o world_n what!_o will_n christ_n set_v any_o on_o a_o impossible_a work_n or_o make_v it_o so_o necessary_a to_o people_n to_o obey_v one_o that_o they_o never_o so_o much_o as_o hear_v from_o but_o what_o say_v the_o jesuit_n to_o the_o old_a woman_n why_o he_o tell_v she_o non_fw-la potuisse_fw-la romanum_fw-la pontificem_fw-la qui_fw-la totius_fw-la christi_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la pastor_n est_fw-la praeteritis_fw-la retro_fw-la annis_fw-la doctores_fw-la in_o abassiam_fw-la mittere_fw-la eo_fw-la quod_fw-la mahumetani_n omne_fw-la circumdarent_fw-la nec_fw-la ullum_fw-la ad_fw-la ipsos_fw-la additum_fw-la relinquerant_fw-la nunc_fw-la vero_fw-la aperta_fw-la jam_fw-la maritima_n ad_fw-la aethiopiam_fw-la via_fw-la id_fw-la praestare_fw-la quod_fw-la nequivit_fw-la prius_fw-la that_o be_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n who_o be_v the_o pastor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o able_a in_o the_o year_n past_a to_o send_v doctor_n into_o habassia_n because_o the_o mahomitan_n compass_v all_o and_o leave_v not_o any_o passage_n to_o they_o but_o now_o the_o sea_n be_v open_a he_o can_v do_v that_o which_o he_o can_v not_o before_o litter_n gonzal_n roder._n in_o godign_a de_fw-fr reb._n abass_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 18._o pag._n 324._o a_o fair_a answer_n as_o if_o christ_n have_v set_v either_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o abassine_n a_o impossible_a task_n and_o appoint_v a_o governor_n that_o for_o so_o many_o hundred_o year_n can_v not_o govern_v or_o the_o people_n must_v be_v so_o many_o hundred_o year_n no_o christian_n though_o they_o believe_v in_o christ_n till_o the_o pope_n can_v send_v to_o they_o and_o how_o shall_v these_o and_o all_o such_o country_n send_v bishop_n to_o a_o general_n council_n as_o your_o own_o canus_n loc._n theol._n say_v of_o the_o jesuit_n so_o say_v i_o of_o your_o new_a church_n vocati_fw-la estis_fw-la ad_fw-la secietatem_fw-la jesus_n christi_fw-la quae_fw-la sine_fw-la dubio_fw-la societas_fw-la cum_fw-la christi_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la sit_fw-la qui_fw-la titulum_fw-la sibi_fw-la illum_fw-la arrogant_a hi_o videant_fw-la a_o haereticorum_fw-la more_fw-it penes_fw-la se_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la existere_fw-la mentiantur_fw-la i_o e._n you_o be_v call_v to_o the_o society_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o society_n be_v undoubted_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n let_v they_o see_v to_o it_o that_o arrogate_v this_o title_n to_o themselves_o whether_o they_o do_v not_o imitate_v heretic_n by_o a_o lie_a affirmation_n that_o the_o church_n be_v only_o with_o they_o lib._n 4._o c._n 2._o fol._n mihi_fw-la 116._o but_o we_o do_v not_o hence_o conclude_v that_o all_o that_o have_v live_v and_o die_v in_o your_o profession_n have_v be_v no_o member_n of_o the_o church_n because_o that_o your_o church_n be_v guilty_a of_o heresy_n and_o notorious_o of_o schism_n for_o we_o know_v that_o million_o that_o live_v among_o you_o consent_v not_o to_o your_o usurpation_n nay_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o understand_v your_o error_n thereabouts_o and_o some_o hold_v they_o but_o notional_o as_o uneffectual_a opinion_n and_o every_o one_o be_v not_o a_o heretic_n that_o hold_v a_o point_n that_o be_v judge_v heretical_a and_o which_o be_v heresy_n in_o another_o that_o hold_v it_o in_o another_o sort_n and_o there_o be_v error_n call_v heresy_n by_o most_o
not_o bind_v so_o much_o as_o to_o seek_v information_n and_o pag._n 120._o he_o cite_v vega_n lib._n 6._o cap._n 18._o say_v that_o as_o ignorance_n purae_fw-la negationis_fw-la about_o many_o article_n of_o faith_n may_v be_v without_o fault_n so_o there_o be_v the_o same_o reason_n of_o ignorance_n prauae_fw-la dispositionis_fw-la which_o he_o maintain_v against_o gerson_n and_o hugo_n and_o s._n clara_n add_v of_o his_o own_o to_o speak_v my_o sense_n free_o i_o think_v that_o the_o common_a people_n commit_v themselves_o to_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o pastor_n trust_v their_o knowledge_n and_o goodness_n if_o they_o be_v deceive_v it_o shall_v be_v account_v invincible_a ignorance_n or_o probable_a at_o least_o so_o herera_n which_o excuse_v from_o fault_n yea_o some_o doctor_n give_v so_o much_o to_o the_o instruction_n of_o doctor_n on_o who_o the_o care_n of_o the_o flock_n lie_v that_o if_o they_o teach_v hic_fw-la &_o nunc_fw-la that_o god_n will_v be_v hate_v that_o a_o rude_a parishoner_v be_v bind_v to_o believe_v they_o and_o so_o page_n 121._o conclude_v that_o he_o hope_v many_o of_o we_o be_v save_v page_n 122._o he_o cit_v the_o consent_n of_o azorius_fw-la to._n 1._o l._n 8._o just_a c._n 6._o and_o corduba_n again_o and_o pag._n 123._o say_v it_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o common_a opinion_n of_o the_o school_n and_o doctor_n at_o this_o day_n that_o the_o laity_n err_v with_o their_o teacher_n or_o pastor_n be_v altogether_o excuse_v from_o all_o fault_n yea_o by_o err_a thus_o many_o way_n material_o they_o merit_v for_o the_o act_n of_o christian_a obedience_n which_o they_o owe_v their_o teacher_n as_o valentia_n say_v tom._n 3._o disp_n 1._o q._n 2._o pag._n 5._o and_o other_o with_o angle_n vasquez_n etc._n etc._n pag._n 124_o 125._o after_o cajetan_n he_o cite_v zanchez_n teach_v that_o those_o that_o be_v bring_v up_o among_o heretic_n be_v not_o bind_v present_o to_o believe_v and_o yet_o be_v not_o to_o be_v account_v heretic_n till_o they_o refuse_v belief_n sufficient_o propound_v to_o they_o and_o he_o cite_v alph._n à_fw-fr castro_n and_o simanchas_n arragon_n and_o tannerus_n and_o faber_n for_o the_o same_o and_o pag._n 126._o he_o cite_v eman_n sa_o affirm_v that_o even_o among_o catholic_n many_o be_v excuse_v from_o the_o explicit_a knowledge_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o incarnation_n special_o if_o there_o want_v a_o teacher_n for_o what_o say_v he_o shall_v we_o say_v that_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o christian_n otherwise_o good_a people_n perish_v that_o scarce_o know_v any_o thing_n aright_o of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o incarnation_n yea_o judge_v perverse_o or_o false_o of_o they_o if_o you_o ask_v they_o and_o cite_v rozella_n and_o midina_fw-la of_o the_o same_o mind_n last_o give_v also_o the_o judgement_n of_o gr._n valentia_n full_o for_o his_o opinion_n analys_n fid_fw-we lib._n 2._o cap._n 3._o lit_fw-fr d._n in_o the_o sixteen_o problem_n page_n 127._o he_o put_v another_o question_n whether_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o decalogue_n may_v be_v unknown_a without_o fault_n and_o say_v that_o though_o alex._n alice_n say_v no_o yet_o it_o be_v the_o more_o common_a and_o receive_a opinion_n cite_v adrian_n corduba_n herera_n &_o alios_fw-la communiter_fw-la that_o there_o may_v be_v such_o invincible_a ignorance_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o the_o decalogue_n and_o note_v for_o the_o understanding_n of_o all_o this_o that_o this_o which_o they_o call_v a_o implicit_a faith_n in_o christ_n be_v no_o actual_a faith_n in_o christ_n at_o all_o he_o that_o only_o believe_v as_o the_o church_n believe_v and_o know_v not_o that_o the_o church_n believe_v in_o christ_n in_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n etc._n etc._n have_v no_o actual_a belief_n in_o christ_n or_o the_o resurrection_n at_o all_o ignoti_fw-la nulla_fw-la fides_fw-la if_o i_o believe_v that_o one_o of_o you_o be_v true_a of_o his_o word_n it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o i_o actual_o believe_v the_o particular_a proposition_n which_o i_o never_o hear_v this_o which_o they_o call_v a_o implicit_a belief_n be_v nothing_o but_o the_o explicit_a actual_a belief_n of_o the_o formal_a object_n of_o faith_n divine_a or_o humane_a as_o that_o god_n be_v true_a or_o the_o church_n true_a and_o infallible_a but_o it_o be_v no_o belief_n at_o all_o of_o the_o particular_a material_a object_n and_o note_v that_o every_o one_o in_o the_o world_n that_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n must_v needs_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v no_o liar_n and_o so_o have_v in_o god_n a_o implicit_a belief_n now_o if_o this_o will_v save_v man_n without_o a_o particular_a belief_n in_o christ_n than_o christianity_n be_v not_o necessary_a every_o turk_n and_o jew_n and_o infidel_n that_o believe_v in_o god_n may_v then_o be_v say_v to_o have_v a_o implicit_a faith_n in_o christ_n in_o the_o popish_a language_n because_o he_o believe_v all_o that_o god_n reveal_v to_o be_v true_a but_o if_o a_o implicit_a faith_n in_o god_n will_v not_o serve_v how_o shall_v a_o implicit_a faith_n in_o the_o church_n serve_v unless_o the_o church_n that_o be_v the_o pope_n be_v better_o than_o god_n see_v here_o whether_o they_o make_v any_o more_o of_o the_o christian_a faith_n then_o a_o mere_a shoo_a horn_n to_o draw_v and_o keep_v man_n to_o their_o side_n by_o a_o general_n council_n and_o the_o pope_n it_o be_v determine_v that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v out_o of_o their_o church_n as_o head_v by_o the_o pope_n to_o believe_v in_o the_o pope_n be_v of_o necessity_n to_o salvation_n but_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n in_o his_o incarnation_n death_n resurrection_n be_v not_o so_o a_o implicit_a faith_n in_o the_o pope_n or_o church_n yea_o or_o err_v doctor_n may_v save_v and_o man_n may_v merit_v by_o follow_v they_o in_o error_n but_o a_o implicit_a faith_n in_o god_n himself_o will_v not_o save_v if_o we_o believe_v not_o in_o the_o pope_n so_o that_o if_o we_o be_v infidel_n we_o may_v be_v save_v so_o we_o be_v of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o believe_v in_o the_o pope_n but_o the_o holy_a christian_a that_o believe_v explicit_o in_o god_n and_o all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n can_v be_v save_v if_o he_o believe_v not_o in_o the_o pope_n do_v you_o think_v they_o believe_v these_o doctrine_n themselves_o or_o rather_o frame_v they_o to_o the_o build_n of_o their_o kingdom_n and_o what_o a_o wonder_n be_v it_o that_o learned_a doctor_n see_v not_o their_o own_o contradiction_n they_o suppose_v a_o man_n to_o believe_v in_o the_o pope_n or_o as_o the_o church_n believe_v and_o yet_o not_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o be_v not_o the_o church_n essential_o a_o company_n of_o christian_n the_o spouse_n and_o body_n and_o school_n and_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v not_o the_o pope_n essential_o the_o pretend_a vicar_n of_o christ_n how_o then_o can_v they_o believe_v in_o christ_n vicar_n or_o christ_n school_n or_o kingdom_n or_o follower_n before_o they_o believe_v in_o christ_n himself_o and_o by_o all_o this_o you_o may_v perceive_v the_o holiness_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o that_o discipline_n or_o church_n government_n that_o all_o the_o world_n must_v needs_o submit_v to_o or_o be_v damn_v even_o such_o as_o take_v in_o infidel_n and_o all_o and_o lay_v the_o church_n as_o common_a to_o the_o world_n for_o as_o many_o as_o will_v but_o believe_v in_o the_o pope_n and_o clergy_n you_o see_v here_o also_o another_o mystery_n open_v that_o a_o man_n may_v have_v enough_o to_o justify_v he_o that_o yet_o will_v not_o save_v he_o for_o most_o of_o they_o be_v here_o say_v to_o hold_v that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v justify_v without_o a_o explicit_a faith_n in_o christ_n or_o that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o his_o justification_n but_o to_o his_o salvation_n it_o be_v though_o the_o other_o half_o say_v that_o its_o necessary_a to_o neither_o and_o if_o a_o man_n die_v in_o a_o justify_v state_n must_v he_o be_v condemn_v when_o paul_n say_v rom._n 8._o 30._o who_o he_o justify_v they_o he_o also_o glorify_v you_o see_v also_o here_o what_o their_o baptism_n do_v that_o can_v ex_fw-la opere_fw-la operato_fw-la infallible_o put_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o all_o these_o infidel_n and_o so_o the_o eucharist_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o they_o must_v not_o be_v save_v for_o all_o that_o their_o sin_n be_v all_o do_v away_o o_o what_o a_o maze_n be_v the_o romish_a divinity_n and_o you_o see_v how_o well_o they_o be_v agree_v about_o these_o fundamental_o when_o half_a of_o they_o think_v that_o a_o actual_a belief_n in_o christ_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o not_o to_o justification_n and_o other_o that_o its_o necessary_a to_o
be_v together_o by_o the_o ear_n who_o say_v that_o merit_n of_o condignity_n be_v but_o ex_fw-la pacto_fw-la by_o virtue_n of_o god_n promise_n and_o now_o i_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o conscience_n of_o any_o sober_a papist_n whether_o we_o be_v guilty_a in_o any_o one_o point_n that_o this_o great_a cardinal_n charge_v we_o with_o and_o whether_o papist_n and_o protestant_n be_v not_o in_o a_o fair_a way_n for_o reconciliation_n if_o we_o differ_v not_o more_o in_o other_o thing_n then_o in_o these_o and_o here_o again_o i_o must_v let_v they_o know_v that_o scripture_n only_o be_v the_o rule_n and_o test_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o religion_n their_o polidor_n virgil_n in_o this_o speak_v true_o of_o we_o say_v they_o be_v call_v evangelical_n because_o they_o maintain_v that_o no_o law_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v in_o matter_n of_o salvation_n but_o what_o be_v deliver_v by_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n so_o sapless_a and_o putid_v be_v their_o scorn_n of_o the_o evangelium_fw-la quintum_fw-la if_o therefore_o luther_n calvin_n or_o any_o man_n speak_v in_o any_o word_n amiss_o blame_v the_o man_n that_o speak_v it_o for_o that_o word_n but_o blame_v not_o all_o or_o any_o other_o for_o it_o if_o you_o be_v man_n austin_n retract_v his_o own_o error_n and_o which_o of_o we_o dare_v justify_v every_o word_n that_o have_v fall_v from_o our_o mouth_n or_o pen_n before_o god_n how_o many_o hundred_o point_n do_v schoolman_n and_o commentator_n charge_v on_o one_o another_o as_o erroneous_a among_o yourselves_o shall_v all_o the_o error_n of_o the_o father_n be_v charge_v on_o the_o catholic_n church_n or_o all_o your_o writer_n error_n upon_o you_o and_o that_o we_o do_v well_o to_o stick_v to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o the_o sufficient_a rule_n we_o be_v the_o more_o encourage_v to_o think_v by_o the_o concession_n of_o our_o adversary_n of_o great_a note_n as_o well_o as_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n itself_o and_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o unprovedness_n of_o of_o their_o pretend_a additonal_n among_o other_o even_o this_o great_a cardinal_n richlieu_n say_v thus_o pag._n 38._o nos_fw-la autem_fw-la nullam_fw-la aliam_fw-la etc._n etc._n i._n e._n as_o for_o we_o we_o put_v or_o assert_v no_o other_o rule_n but_o scripture_n neither_o of_o another_o sort_n nor_o total_a yea_o we_o say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o whole_a rule_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o that_o on_o a_o double_a account_n both_o because_o it_o contain_v immediate_o and_o formal_o the_o sum_n of_o our_o salvation_n that_o be_v all_o the_o article_n that_o be_v necessary_a to_o man_n salvation_n by_o necessity_n of_o mean_n n._n b._n and_o because_o it_o mediate_o contain_v whatsoever_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v as_o it_o send_v we_o to_o the_o church_n to_o be_v instruct_v by_o she_o of_o who_o infallibility_n it_o certain_o confirm_v we_o note_v here_o that_o 1._o he_o grant_v we_o that_o all_o article_n necessary_a to_o our_o salvation_n as_o mean_n be_v immediate_o and_o formal_o in_o the_o scripture_n and_o then_o sure_o they_o may_v be_v save_v that_o believe_v no_o more_o than_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n 2._o that_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v no_o church_n but_o that_o which_o the_o scripture_n send_v we_o to_o and_o to_o believe_v its_o infallibility_n no_o further_o than_o the_o scripture_n do_v confirm_v it_o and_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v our_o whole_a and_o only_a rule_n o_o that_o all_o papist_n will_v stand_v to_o this_o but_o let_v they_o not_o blame_v we_o now_o for_o stand_v to_o it_o have_v this_o cardinal_n do_v no_o more_o by_o policy_n and_o power_n then_o by_o dispute_v against_o the_o reformation_n he_o may_v easy_o have_v be_v deal_v with_o chap._n xl._o detect_v 31._o another_o of_o their_o fraud_n be_v by_o rank_v the_o protestant_n among_o the_o rabble_n of_o sect_n and_o heresy_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n and_o then_o ask_v ignorant_a soul_n if_o you_o will_v needs_o be_v of_o any_o sect_n how_o many_o be_v here_o before_o you_o and_o what_o reason_n have_v you_o rather_o to_o be_v of_o the_o protestant_n then_o of_o any_o other_o answ_n indeed_o this_o question_n be_v worth_a the_o consider_v by_o a_o papist_n or_o any_o sectary_n but_o the_o true_a catholic_n be_v quite_o out_o of_o the_o reach_n of_o it_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v one_o and_o but_o one._n this_o one_o catholic_n church_n contain_v all_o the_o true_a christian_n in_o the_o world_n this_o be_v the_o church_n that_o i_o be_o a_o member_n of_o which_o be_v far_o wide_a than_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o church_n that_o i_o profess_v myself_o a_o member_n of_o contain_v three_o part_n 1._o the_o most_o sound_a and_o healthful_a part_n and_o that_o be_v the_o reform_a church_n 2._o the_o most_o unsound_a in_o doctrine_n though_o possess_v of_o many_o learned_a man_n and_o that_o be_v the_o papist_n themselves_o not_o as_o papist_n simple_o but_o as_o christian_n though_o infect_v with_o popery_n 3._o the_o middle_a part_n which_o be_v sound_a than_o the_o papist_n in_o doctrine_n but_o less_o learned_a and_o below_o the_o protestant_n in_o both_o and_o that_o be_v all_o the_o greek_n and_o other_o eastern_a and_o southern_a church_n that_o be_v no_o subject_n of_o the_o pope_n all_o these_o even_o all_o true_a christian_n be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n that_o i_o belong_v to_o though_o some_o of_o they_o be_v more_o sound_n and_o some_o be_v leprous_a or_o lamentable_o pollute_v to_o these_o i_o may_v add_v many_o particular_a lesser_a sect_n that_o subvert_v not_o the_o foundation_n as_o some_o anabaptist_n and_o divers_a other_o and_o will_v you_o ask_v i_o now_o why_o i_o will_v not_o be_v of_o another_o sect_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o protestant_n why_o my_o answer_n be_v ready_a a_o sect_n divide_v from_o the_o body_n i_o abhor_v i_o be_o of_o no_o sect_n it_o be_v the_o unity_n universality_n and_o antiquity_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v its_o honourable_a attribute_n in_o my_o eye_n protestant_n that_o unchurch_n all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n and_o count_v themselves_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n do_v in_o some_o sort_n make_v themselves_o a_o sect_n but_o where_o be_v there_o any_o such_o i_o know_v none_o such_o nor_o i_o hope_v ever_o shall_v do_v and_o therefore_o i_o may_v say_v that_o protestant_n be_v no_o more_o a_o sect_n than_o the_o patient_n in_o a_o hospital_n that_o be_v almost_o heal_v or_o then_o the_o high_a form_n of_o scholar_n in_o a_o school_n or_o then_o the_o merchant_n or_o rich_a sort_n of_o tradesman_n in_o a_o city_n and_o such_o a_o sect_n god_n grant_v that_o i_o may_v be_v of_o even_o one_o in_o the_o church_n that_o shall_v be_v of_o sound_a understanding_n and_o of_o pure_a worship_n and_o of_o the_o most_o careful_a holy_a honest_a life_n but_o still_o i_o shall_v acknowledge_v they_o of_o the_o low_a form_n even_o they_o that_o learn_v the_o a._n b._n c._n to_o be_v in_o the_o same_o school_n with_o i_o and_o if_o they_o papist_n or_o any_o other_o will_v disclaim_v i_o that_o shall_v not_o unchurch_n i_o as_o long_o as_o christ_n disclaim_v i_o not_o nor_o shall_v it_o provoke_v i_o to_o disclaim_v they_o any_o further_a than_o i_o see_v christ_n lead_v i_o the_o way_n so_o that_o the_o papist_n may_v see_v that_o if_o they_o will_v deny_v the_o church_n that_o i_o be_o of_o they_o must_v deny_v their_o own_o and_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n but_o how_o will_v they_o answer_v this_o themselves_o serious_o i_o profess_v that_o beside_o their_o other_o error_n it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a reason_n why_o i_o dare_v not_o be_v a_o papist_n because_o than_o i_o know_v i_o must_v be_v a_o sectary_n what_o be_v a_o papist_n but_o as_o mere_a a_o sectary_n as_o any_o that_o retain_v a_o name_n in_o the_o church_n they_o be_v a_o company_n of_o man_n that_o have_v set_v up_o a_o humane_a usurp_a head_n or_o vice-christ_n over_o the_o catholic_n church_n own_v he_o themselves_o and_o unchurch_v and_o condemn_v all_o the_o church_n that_o will_v not_o own_v he_o the_o church_n that_o i_o be_o of_o be_v near_o thrice_o as_o big_a as_o the_o papist_n church_n be_v they_o be_v but_o a_o piece_n and_o a_o pollute_a piece_n that_o will_v divide_v itself_o from_o all_o the_o rest_n by_o condemn_v they_o and_o now_o i_o will_v serious_o desire_v any_o papist_n living_n to_o resolve_v the_o question_n if_o he_o will_v needs_o be_v of_o a_o sect_n and_o forsake_v the_o universal_a church_n why_o of_o the_o popish_a sect_n rather_o than_o another_o if_o because_o it_o be_v the_o great_a i_o answer_v it_o be_v less_o than_o the_o whole_a if_o because_o it_o
at_o least_o be_v at_o a_o great_a distance_n from_o they_o then_o before_o for_o such_o a_o war_n will_v never_o out_o of_o his_o mind_n nor_o will_v he_o think_v himself_o safe_a till_o he_o have_v disable_v they_o from_o do_v the_o like_a again_o but_o if_o one_o part_n conquer_v it_o will_v be_v the_o king_n or_o the_o puritan_n for_o so_o the_o protestant_n must_v now_o be_v call_v if_o the_o king_n prevail_v then_o will_v the_o puritan_n be_v total_o tread_v down_o and_o we_o by_o who_o help_n the_o victory_n be_v get_v shall_v certain_o be_v incomparable_o better_a than_o we_o be_v if_o not_o have_v present_o all_o our_o will_n for_o our_o fidelity_n will_v be_v predicate_v the_o rebel_n will_v be_v odious_a so_o that_o their_o very_a name_n will_v be_v a_o scorn_n and_o there_o will_v be_v no_o great_a resistance_n of_o we_o for_o say_v mr._n middleton_n in_o his_o letter_n to_o the_o a._n b._n of_o canterb._n in_o prins_n introduct_v p._n 142_o 143._o the_o jesuit_n at_o florence_n late_o return_v from_o england_n who_o pretend_v to_o have_v make_v a_o strict_a discovery_n of_o the_o state_n of_o england_n as_o it_o stand_v for_o religion_n say_v that_o the_o puritan_n be_v shrewd_a fellow_n but_o those_o which_o be_v count_v good_a protestant_n be_v fair_a condition_v honest_a man_n and_o think_v they_o may_v be_v save_v in_o any_o religion_n but_o if_o the_o puritan_n get_v the_o day_n which_o be_v a_o most_o unlikely_a thing_n yet_o shall_v we_o make_v great_a advantage_n of_o it_o for_o 1._o they_o will_v be_v unsettled_a and_o all_o in_o piece_n and_o not_o know_v how_o to_o settle_v the_o government_n and_o say_v the_o jesuit_n letter_n find_v in_o the_o a._n b._n of_o cant._n study_v in_o prins_n introduct_v pag._n 89_o 90._o our_o foundation_n must_v be_v mutation_n this_o will_v cause_v a_o relaxation_n which_o serve_v as_o so_o many_o violent_a disease_n as_o the_o stone_n gout_n etc._n etc._n to_o the_o speedy_a destruction_n etc._n etc._n 2._o we_o shall_v necessitate_v the_o puritan_n protestant_n to_o keep_v the_o king_n as_o a_o prisoner_n or_o else_o to_o put_v he_o to_o death_n if_o they_o keep_v he_o as_o a_o prisoner_n his_o diligence_n and_o friend_n and_o their_o own_o division_n will_v either_o work_v his_o deliverance_n and_o give_v he_o the_o day_n again_o by_o our_o help_n or_o at_o least_o will_v keep_v the_o state_n in_o a_o continual_a unsettledness_n and_o will_v be_v a_o odium_n on_o they_o if_o they_o cut_v he_o off_o which_o we_o will_v rather_o promote_v lest_o they_o shall_v make_v use_n of_o his_o extremity_n to_o any_o advantage_n then_o 1._o we_o shall_v procure_v the_o odium_n of_o king-killing_a to_o fall_v upon_o they_o which_o they_o be_v wont_n to_o cast_v upon_o we_o and_o so_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o disburden_v ourselves_o 2._o and_o we_o shall_v have_v they_o all_o to_o piece_n in_o distraction_n for_o 3._o either_o they_o will_v then_o set_v up_o a_o new_a king_n or_o the_o parliament_n will_v keep_v the_o power_n change_v the_o government_n into_o a_o democracy_n the_o first_o can_v be_v do_v without_o great_a concussion_n and_o new_a war_n and_o we_o shall_v have_v opportunity_n to_o have_v a_o hand_n in_o all_o and_o if_o it_o be_v do_v it_o may_v be_v much_o to_o our_o advantage_n the_o second_o will_v apparent_o by_o faction_n and_o distraction_n give_v we_o foot_v for_o continual_a attempt_n but_o to_o make_v all_o sure_a we_o will_v secret_o have_v our_o party_n among_o the_o puritan_n also_o that_o we_o may_v be_v sure_a to_o maintain_v our_o interest_n which_o way_n ever_o the_o world_n go_v the_o event_n with_o common_a reason_n and_o many_o full_a discovery_n show_v that_o this_o be_v the_o frame_n of_o the_o papist_n plot_n and_o what_o power_n and_o interest_n they_o have_v in_o the_o king_n army_n and_o counsel_n in_o the_o war_n be_v a_o thing_n that_o need_v no_o further_a discovery_n but_o have_v they_o any_o interest_n in_o the_o council_n and_o force_n of_o the_o parliament_n answ_n it_o will_v be_v expect_v that_o he_o that_o assert_v any_o thing_n in_o matter_n of_o this_o moment_n shall_v prove_v it_o by_o more_o than_o moral_a evidence_n of_o great_a probability_n and_o therefore_o i_o shall_v be_v spare_v in_o my_o assertion_n but_o yet_o i_o shall_v say_v in_o general_a that_o though_o the_o business_n will_v be_v troublesome_a chargeable_a and_o tedious_a to_o call_v together_o the_o witness_n that_o be_v necessary_a yet_o witness_n and_o evidence_n may_v be_v have_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o papist_n have_v have_v more_o to_o do_v in_o our_o affair_n than_o most_o man_n be_v aware_a of_o without_o any_o positive_a assertion_n therefore_o i_o desire_v they_o that_o can_v see_v a_o cause_n in_o its_o effect_n but_o to_o follow_v these_o stream_n till_o they_o find_v the_o fountain_n 1._o whence_o come_v those_o motion_n against_o the_o ministry_n and_o church_n into_o our_o council_n whence_o be_v it_o that_o so_o many_o man_n of_o note_n do_v call_v the_o friend_n of_o the_o ministry_n priest_n ride_v fellow_n and_o the_o minister_n jack_n presbyter_n to_o teach_v the_o nation_n to_o bring_v they_o into_o scorn_n i_o well_o know_v that_o all_o this_o come_v from_o hell_n but_o whether_o by_o the_o way_n of_o rome_n i_o leave_v to_o your_o inquiry_n yea_o whence_o be_v it_o that_o motion_n have_v be_v make_v to_o pull_v down_o all_o the_o ministry_n at_o once_o be_v this_o by_o protestant_n 2._o whence_o come_v the_o doctrine_n contend_v for_o by_o sir_n h._n v._o and_o other_o against_o the_o power_n of_o the_o magistrate_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o for_o universal_a liberty_n in_o religion_n i_o know_v the_o papist_n be_v not_o for_o such_o liberty_n in_o spain_n or_o any_o where_o where_o they_o can_v hinder_v it_o but_o with_o all_o i_o know_v that_o it_o be_v one_o of_o their_o fundamental_o that_o such_o matter_n belong_v only_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o prelate_n and_o magistrate_n must_v but_o be_v their_o executioner_n and_o i_o know_v that_o its_o true_o the_o magistrate_n power_n for_o which_o the_o usurp_a pope_n contend_v and_o i_o know_v that_o the_o papist_n be_v most_o zealous_a for_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n in_o england_n though_o deadly_a enemy_n to_o it_o elsewhere_o 3._o and_o whence_o come_v the_o hider_n body_n of_o divinity_n that_o have_v infect_v so_o many_o high_a and_o low_a how_o come_v so_o many_o call_v seeker_n to_o seem_v to_o be_v at_o a_o loss_n whether_o there_o be_v any_o scripture_n church_n or_o ministry_n or_o which_o be_v they_o 4._o how_o come_v we_o contrive_v into_o a_o war_n with_o scotland_n and_o holland_n when_o we_o can_v keep_v peace_n with_o spain_n with_o they_o or_o we_o or_o both_o there_o be_v some_o sorry_a cause_n 5._o how_o come_v our_o army_n so_o corrupt_v with_o principle_n of_o impiety_n licentiousness_n and_o anarchy_n that_o so_o many_o turn_v leveller_n to_o say_v nothing_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o rise_v up_o against_o their_o commander_n and_o be_v fain_o to_o be_v subdue_v by_o force_n and_o some_o of_o they_o shoot_v to_o death_n and_o many_o cashier_v etc._n etc._n 6._o how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o papist_n have_v be_v discover_v in_o our_o army_n and_o in_o the_o several_a party_n in_o the_o land_n 7._o and_o where_o be_v the_o swarm_n of_o the_o english_a jesuit_n and_o friar_n that_o be_v know_v to_o have_v empty_v themselves_o upon_o we_o from_o their_o college_n beyond_o sea_n 8._o how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o the_o petition_n of_o the_o protestant_a presbyter_n of_o london_n and_o of_o other_o protestant_n for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o king_n can_v not_o be_v hear_v but_o that_o the_o level_a party_n carry_v on_o their_o work_n till_o they_o have_v set_v the_o foreign_a and_o domestic_a papist_n on_o reproach_v the_o protestant_n as_o king-killer_n and_o have_v though_o very_o false_o turn_v the_o odium_fw-la of_o that_o horrid_a kind_n of_o crime_n upon_o the_o innocent_a protestant_n which_o the_o papist_n be_v know_v to_o be_v most_o deep_o guilty_a of_o and_o now_o in_o all_o nation_n they_o make_v the_o ignorant_a people_n believe_v that_o the_o death_n of_o that_o king_n be_v the_o work_n of_o the_o protestant_n or_o presbyterian_o and_o the_o blot_n of_o their_o religion_n 9_o whence_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o level_v go_v on_o with_o continue_a success_n till_o the_o house_n of_o lord_n with_o the_o regal_a office_n be_v take_v down_o and_o a_o engagement_n put_v on_o all_o those_o ductile_a soul_n that_o will_v take_v it_o to_o be_v true_a to_o the_o commonwealth_n as_o establish_v without_o a_o king_n or_o house_n of_o lord_n 10._o whence_o come_v it_o that_o the_o weekly_a news_n book_n contain_v the_o
after_o many_o year_n blood_n and_o desolation_n judicial_o take_v away_o his_o life_n as_o guilty_a of_o all_o this_o blood_n and_o not_o to_o be_v trust_v any_o more_o with_o government_n and_o all_o this_o they_o do_v not_o as_o private_a man_n but_o as_o the_o remain_a sovereign_a power_n and_o say_v they_o do_v it_o according_a to_o the_o law_n undoubted_o this_o case_n do_v very_o much_o differ_v from_o the_o powder-plot_n or_o papist_n murder_v of_o king_n and_o teach_v that_o its_o lawful_a for_o a_o private_a hand_n to_o do_v it_o if_o he_o be_v but_o a_o heretic_n or_o be_v but_o depose_v yea_o or_o excommunicate_v by_o the_o pope_n a_o war_n and_o a_o treacherous_a murder_n be_v not_o all_o one_o nor_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o sovereign_a power_n all_o one_o with_o a_o private_a hand_n or_o foreign_a prelate_n pretend_v to_o a_o dominion_n over_o the_o life_n and_o state_n of_o prince_n and_o over_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o the_o vice-christ_n and_o vice-god_n on_o earth_n it_o be_v a_o grievous_a case_n that_o the_o senate_n or_o body_n of_o a_o nation_n shall_v think_v themselves_o necessitate_v to_o defend_v themselves_o and_o the_o church_n and_o state_n against_o their_o prince_n or_o any_o that_o act_n by_o his_o command_n it_o will_v strong_o tempt_v they_o to_o think_v that_o the_o end_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o mean_n and_o that_o it_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o mean_n which_o be_v against_o and_o destructive_a to_o the_o end_n and_o that_o it_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o govern_v power_n to_o be_v for_o the_o common_a good_a and_o therefore_o that_o it_o be_v no_o authority_n which_o be_v use_v against_o it_o it_o will_v tempt_v they_o also_o to_o think_v that_o god_n never_o give_v power_n to_o any_o against_o himself_o or_o above_o his_o law_n or_o against_o the_o end_n of_o government_n and_o a_o senate_n or_o the_o body_n of_o a_o nation_n will_v be_v apt_a to_o think_v themselves_o fit_a to_o discern_v when_o the_o public_a safety_n be_v dangerous_o assault_v and_o will_v hardly_o be_v bring_v to_o trust_v any_o one_o to_o be_v the_o final_a judge_n of_o their_o necessity_n as_o think_v such_o a_o public_a necessity_n prove_v itself_o and_o needs_o no_o judge_n but_o sense_n and_o reason_n to_o discern_v it_o and_o if_o they_o also_o think_v that_o the_o fundamental_a constitution_n of_o the_o government_n do_v make_v the_o senate_n the_o high_a judge_n of_o the_o safety_n or_o danger_n of_o the_o republic_n and_o so_o that_o the_o law_n be_v on_o their_o side_n and_o that_o it_o be_v treason_n against_o the_o commonwealth_n and_o as_o politician_n say_v against_o the_o majestas_fw-la realis_fw-la to_o rise_v against_o they_o the_o temptation_n than_o be_v much_o the_o strong_a and_o where_o the_o legislative_a power_n and_o high_a judicial_a power_n be_v by_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o government_n divide_v between_o the_o prince_n and_o senate_n and_o so_o the_o sovereignty_n divide_v many_o will_v be_v ready_a to_o think_v with_o grotius_n de_fw-fr jure_fw-la belli_n lib._n 1._o §_o 13._o p._n 91._o that_o the_o prince_n invade_v the_o senate_n right_a may_v just_o be_v resist_v and_o may_v lose_v his_o right_n quod_fw-la locum_fw-la say_v grotius_n habere_fw-la censeo_fw-la etiamsi_fw-la dictum_fw-la sit_fw-la belli_fw-la potestatem_fw-la penes_fw-la regem_fw-la fore_fw-la id_fw-la exim_fw-la de_fw-la bello_fw-la externo_fw-la intelligendum_fw-la est_fw-la cum_fw-la alioqui_fw-la quisquis_fw-la imperii_fw-la summi_fw-la jus_o partem_fw-la habeat_fw-la non_fw-la possit_fw-la non_fw-la jus_o habere_fw-la eam_fw-la partem_fw-la tuendi_fw-la quod_fw-la ubi_fw-la fit_n potest_fw-la rex_fw-la etiam_fw-la svam_fw-la imperii_fw-la partem_fw-la belli_fw-la jure_fw-la amittere_fw-la and_o indeed_o when_o a_o war_n be_v once_o begin_v the_o difficulty_n of_o reunite_v be_v exceed_v great_a if_o a_o prince_n engage_v either_o hire_a stranger_n or_o fugitive_n or_o homebred_a delinquent_n or_o other_o to_o rise_v up_o against_o the_o senate_n or_o people_n either_o its_o lawful_a to_o defend_v themselves_o by_o arm_n or_o not_o if_o not_o especial_o if_o they_o have_v a_o share_n in_o the_o sovereignty_n then_o be_v his_o power_n absolute_a and_o unlimited_a and_o neither_o law_n nor_o any_o thing_n below_o be_v any_o security_n against_o his_o will_n to_o the_o common_a safety_n the_o contrary_n whereto_o our_o late_a king_n declare_v in_o his_o notable_a answer_n to_o the_o nineteen_o proposition_n but_o if_o their_o defence_n be_v lawful_a then_o if_o their_o soldier_n must_v know_v before_o hand_n that_o if_o they_o do_v purchase_v a_o victory_n by_o their_o blood_n when_o they_o have_v all_o do_v they_o must_v be_v all_o govern_v by_o he_o who_o they_o have_v conquer_v and_o lie_v at_o his_o mercy_n they_o will_v hardly_o ever_o have_v a_o army_n to_o defend_v they_o for_o who_o will_v do_v the_o utmost_a that_o be_v possible_a to_o exasperate_v he_o that_o he_o know_v must_v rule_v he_o when_o all_o be_v do_v i_o speak_v not_o this_o by_o way_n of_o justification_n or_o any_o way_n decide_v such_o case_n as_o these_o but_o leave_v that_o as_o a_o controversy_n that_o i_o be_o not_o here_o to_o decide_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o other_o i_o only_o show_v the_o world_n again_o that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o difference_n between_o such_o a_o war_n and_o conquest_n of_o a_o prince_n by_o the_o senate_n and_o body_n of_o the_o people_n and_o their_o allow_a pope_n to_o depose_v they_o and_o alienate_v their_o dominion_n and_o private_a man_n to_o rebel_v and_o to_o murder_v they_o if_o the_o pope_n consent_n or_o excommunicate_v they_o whether_o they_o be_v in_o the_o right_n or_o wrong_n i_o be_o not_o the_o judge_n but_o sure_o it_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o parliament_n that_o upon_o the_o division_n the_o power_n be_v in_o they_o to_o defend_v themselves_o and_o the_o commonwealth_n and_o suppress_v all_o subject_n that_o be_v in_o arm_n against_o they_o and_o that_o those_o that_o do_v resist_v they_o do_v resist_v the_o high_a power_n set_v over_o they_o by_o god_n and_o therefore_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o damnation_n of_o resister_n and_o this_o they_o assure_v the_o people_n be_v the_o truth_n and_o the_o forecited_a concession_n of_o the_o king_n against_o the_o nineteen_o proposition_n acknowledge_v their_o part_n in_o the_o legislative_a power_n and_o defence_n of_o the_o people_n which_o be_v know_v to_o be_v the_o high_a part_n of_o sovereignty_n do_v much_o incline_v many_o to_o believe_v the_o parliament_n especial_o know_v that_o they_o have_v so_o long_o exercise_v the_o say_v legislative_a power_n and_o that_o we_o be_v all_o govern_v by_o law_n of_o their_o make_n so_o that_o those_o that_o do_v obey_v the_o parliament_n do_v very_o think_v that_o they_o obey_v the_o high_a power_n that_o upon_o the_o division_n be_v leave_v in_o the_o commonwealth_n and_o that_o they_o have_v the_o law_n on_o their_o side_n and_o do_v adhere_v to_o the_o common_a good_a which_o be_v the_o end_n of_o government_n and_o as_o they_o have_v thus_o cause_v our_o war_n and_o misery_n and_o scandal_n so_o have_v they_o continue_v to_o multiply_v sect_n among_o we_o of_o all_o sort_n so_o that_o there_o be_v scarce_o a_o sect_n but_o be_v a_o spawn_n of_o the_o jesuit_n and_o friar_n and_o scarce_o a_o honest_a party_n but_o they_o creep_v in_o among_o they_o to_o work_v their_o end_n and_o here_o i_o shall_v brief_o mention_v some_o of_o the_o party_n with_o who_o they_o have_v insinuate_v to_o work_v their_o end_n and_o then_o some_o of_o the_o sect_n that_o they_o have_v breed_v or_o animate_v 1._o as_o for_o the_o old_a english_a bishop_n and_o conformable_a minister_n who_o be_v of_o the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n public_o here_o profess_v i_o confess_v i_o find_v but_o little_a evidence_n that_o ever_o the_o papist_n have_v much_o to_o do_v with_o they_o save_v only_o to_o instigate_v they_o against_o the_o puritan_n and_o draw_v some_o of_o they_o to_o a_o compliance_n with_o such_o as_o do_v out-go_v they_o yet_o in_o their_o time_n bishop_n goodman_n of_o gloucester_n be_v suspect_v to_o be_v a_o papist_n and_o so_o profess_v himself_o by_o his_o last_o testament_n at_o his_o death_n since_o the_o war_n 2._o as_o for_o the_o presbyterian_o i_o do_v not_o see_v any_o reason_n to_o think_v that_o ever_o the_o papist_n have_v any_o interest_n in_o they_o of_o any_o man_n there_o be_v none_o that_o they_o more_o hate_v then_o these_o two_o sort_n the_o old_a sound_n episcopal_a man_n and_o the_o presbyterian_o but_o yet_o both_o in_o france_n and_o scotland_n they_o have_v cunning_o wrought_v upon_o they_o ab_fw-la extra_fw-la alarm_v they_o into_o disturbance_n by_o the_o wildfire_n which_o they_o have_v cast_v in_o 3._o as_o for_o the_o new_a episcopal_a party_n
such_o a_o church_n and_o ministry_n as_o they_o predicate_v and_o yet_o have_v no_o conjecture_n which_o it_o be_v as_o if_o they_o shall_v believe_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o creature_n as_o the_o moon_n but_o be_v not_o able_a to_o know_v it_o from_o the_o star_n the_o second_o sort_n of_o seeker_n be_v to_o seek_v whether_o there_o be_v any_o organise_v political_a church_n or_o any_o ministry_n or_o any_o ordinance_n proper_a to_o a_o church_n at_o all_o or_o not_o not_o deny_v they_o but_o doubt_v and_o seek_v that_o so_o when_o they_o have_v find_v they_o at_o rome_n they_o may_v prove_v but_o finder_n and_o not_o gross_a changeling_n and_o withal_o they_o yield_v that_o private_a man_n may_v declare_v the_o word_n and_o pray_v together_o and_o read_v the_o scripture_n the_o most_o rational_a and_o modest_a that_o have_v write_v for_o this_o way_n be_v the_o author_n of_o asobe_a word_n to_o a_o serious_a people_n a_o likely_a thing_n indeed_o it_o be_v that_o so_o rational_a a_o man_n shall_v hearty_o believe_v that_o christ_n have_v plant_v so_o excellent_a a_o ministry_n and_o church_n and_o ordinance_n as_o himself_o describe_v and_o to_o those_o stand_a necessary_a use_n which_o he_o mention_v even_o instead_o of_o christ_n to_o take_v man_n into_o the_o holy_a covenant_n and_o yet_o that_o all_o shall_v be_v leave_v but_o for_o a_o age_n or_o two_o and_o that_o ever_o since_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n or_o at_o least_o no_o certainty_n of_o it_o the_o style_n show_v we_o that_o this_o author_n be_v no_o such_o dotard_n as_o to_o think_v as_o he_o speak_v 3._o another_o sort_n of_o seeker_n be_v those_o that_o do_v not_o only_o doubt_v of_o but_o flat_o deny_v any_o ministry_n and_o political_a church_n and_o church-ordinance_n on_o earth_n as_o thing_n that_o be_v lose_v in_o a_o universal_a apostasy_n 4._o another_o sort_n of_o seeker_n do_v not_o only_o doubt_v of_o or_o deny_v these_o particular_a church_n and_o ordinance_n but_o also_o they_o be_v to_o seek_v for_o the_o universal_a church_n itself_o and_o the_o holy_a scripture_n yea_o many_o of_o they_o not_o only_o question_v they_o but_o flat_o maintain_v that_o we_o have_v no_o certainty_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v true_a or_o that_o we_o have_v the_o same_o that_o be_v write_v by_o the_o apostle_n or_o that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o true_a ministry_n or_o state_n of_o christianity_n in_o the_o world_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o some_o of_o they_o pour_v out_o so_o many_o reproach_n against_o the_o ministry_n and_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o you_o may_v find_v in_o clem._n writer_n in_o two_o ignorant_a pamphlet_n that_o have_v scorn_n in_o the_o very_a title_n as_o well_o as_o through_o the_o bulk_n one_o call_v the_o jus_fw-la divinum_fw-la of_o presbytery_n and_o the_o other_o fides_n divina_fw-la in_o which_o he_o maintain_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o infidel_n the_o opinion_n which_o this_o sort_n of_o man_n open_o profess_v be_v that_o no_o particular_a man_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v the_o gospel_n but_o those_o that_o have_v themselves_o see_v miracle_n to_o confirm_v it_o and_o therefore_o in_o the_o first_o age_n when_o miracle_n be_v wrought_v those_o that_o see_v they_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o at_o the_o second_o come_v of_o christ_n when_o again_o he_o shall_v be_v witness_v by_o miracle_n it_o will_v again_o become_v a_o duty_n to_o be_v christian_n but_o not_o to_o other_o that_o see_v no_o miracle_n however_o they_o may_v hear_v of_o they_o this_o doctrine_n clem._n writer_n have_v profess_v to_o i_o with_o his_o own_o mouth_n but_o i_o may_v not_o censure_v he_o to_o be_v so_o weak_a as_o to_o believe_v himself_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o such_o a_o silly_a soul_n may_v be_v find_v that_o shall_v think_v that_o christ_n come_v into_o the_o world_n to_o set_v up_o christianity_n as_o the_o true_a religion_n for_o those_o only_o in_o a_o age_n or_o two_o or_o more_o that_o see_v miracle_n but_o it_o be_v unlikely_a that_o a_o man_n that_o have_v any_o considerable_a use_n of_o his_o reason_n shall_v be_v so_o silly_a who_o will_v not_o despise_v christ_n that_o think_v he_o come_v on_o so_o low_a a_o design_n who_o will_v not_o be_v a_o infidel_n that_o think_v ten_o thousand_o infidel_n be_v save_v for_o one_o christian_n yea_o who_o can_v be_v himself_o a_o christian_n that_o think_v that_o he_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o be_v a_o christian_n because_o he_o see_v not_o miracle_n it_o be_v most_o evident_a therefore_o that_o this_o be_v but_o a_o juggle_v and_o that_o such_o be_v either_o infidel_n or_o papist_n infidelity_n be_v the_o thing_n profess_v and_o therefore_o that_o we_o take_v they_o for_o infidel_n they_o can_v blame_v we_o but_o yet_o in_o charity_n i_o hope_v and_o not_o without_o cause_n that_o some_o of_o this_o profession_n be_v but_o papist_n though_o other_o i_o have_v find_v to_o be_v desperate_a infidel_n a_o five_o sort_n call_v seeker_n also_o there_o be_v that_o own_o the_o church_n and_o ministry_n and_o ordinance_n but_o yet_o suppose_v themselves_o above_o they_o for_o they_o think_v that_o these_o be_v but_o the_o administration_n of_o christ_n to_o man_n in_o the_o passage_n to_o a_o high_a state_n and_o that_o such_o as_o have_v receive_v the_o spirit_n and_o have_v the_o law_n once_o write_v in_o their_o heart_n be_v under_o as_o they_o call_v it_o the_o second_o covenant_n and_o so_o be_v past_o the_o low_a form_n of_o ordinance_n scripture_n ministry_n and_o visible_a church_n and_o a_o six_o sort_n of_o seeker_n there_o be_v that_o think_v the_o whole_a company_n of_o believer_n shall_v now_o be_v overgrow_v the_o scripture_n ministry_n and_o ordinance_n for_o they_o think_v that_o the_o law_n be_v the_o father_n administration_n and_o the_o gospel_n ministry_n and_o sacrament_n be_v the_o son_n administration_n and_o that_o both_o these_o be_v now_o past_a and_o the_o season_n of_o the_o spirit_n administration_n be_v come_v which_o all_o must_v attend_v and_o quit_v the_o low_a form_n the_o david-georgians_a be_v the_o chief_a that_o teach_v the_o world_n this_o lesson_n their_o leader_n take_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n all_o these_o sort_n of_o seeker_n be_v breed_v or_o cherish_v by_o the_o jesuit_n and_o friar_n and_o the_o truth_n be_v when_o a_o man_n be_v make_v a_o seeker_n he_o be_v half_o make_v a_o papist_n as_o a_o dog_n when_o he_o have_v lose_v his_o master_n will_v follow_v almost_o any_o body_n that_o will_v whistle_v he_o so_o when_o man_n have_v lose_v their_o ministry_n church_n and_o religion_n they_o be_v easy_o allure_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o they_o be_v a_o body_n as_o conspicuous_a to_o a_o carnal_a eye_n as_o any_o other_o and_o who_o will_v not_o rather_o be_v of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o religion_n then_o of_o none_o 4._o another_o sort_n of_o hider_n be_v the_o quaker_n a_o impudent_a generation_n and_o open_a enough_o in_o pull_v down_o but_o as_o secret_a and_o reserve_v as_o the_o rest_n in_o assert_v and_o build_v up_o what_o interest_n the_o papist_n have_v in_o breed_v and_o feed_v this_o sect_n among_o we_o have_v be_v partly_o prove_v from_o the_o oath_n of_o witness_n and_o confession_n of_o friar_n and_o somewhat_o i_o have_v speak_v of_o it_o in_o three_o several_a paper_n against_o they_o the_o doctrine_n of_o this_o four_o sort_n be_v the_o same_o or_o scarce_o discernible_a from_o the_o rest_n 5._o a_o five_o sort_n of_o hider_n be_v those_o enthusiast_n that_o shun_v the_o affect_v bombast_v language_n of_o behman_n and_o such_o like_a but_o yet_o give_v we_o much_o of_o the_o body_n of_o popery_n head_v by_o a_o infallible_a prophetic_a spirit_n instead_o of_o the_o pope_n such_o as_o the_o author_n of_o the_o book_n against_o the_o assembly_n confession_n own_v by_o parker_n but_o say_v to_o be_v write_v by_o a_o london_n doctor_n and_o many_o such_o doctor_n i_o know_v and_o hear_v of_o abroad_o in_o england_n they_o take_v on_o they_o to_o be_v adversary_n to_o the_o pope_n but_o they_o be_v friend_n to_o his_o doctrine_n and_o maintain_v the_o necessity_n of_o a_o infallible_a live_a judge_n and_o send_v we_o to_o prophet_n for_o this_o infallible_a judgement_n and_o can_v the_o papist_n bring_v man_n once_o to_o this_o it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n to_o strike_v off_o the_o the_o feign_a prophetic_a head_n by_o disgrace_v such_o as_o mere_a fantastic_n and_o to_o set_v on_o the_o ancient_a papal_a head_n which_o only_o will_v agree_v with_o the_o body_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v so_o much_o of_o the_o libertine_n and_o the_o hider_n of_o their_o religion_n of_o several_a sort_n 3._o another_o sort_n that_o be_v spawn_v by_o the_o papist_n be_v stark_a
have_v article_n beside_o those_o of_o the_o creed_n but_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n have_v more_o but_o those_o in_o the_o bull_n be_v new_a as_o dr._n rivet_n will_v have_v it_o but_o very_o many_o learned_a man_n think_v otherwise_o that_o they_o be_v not_o new_a if_o they_o be_v right_o understand_v and_o that_o this_o appear_v by_o the_o place_n both_o of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o of_o such_o as_o have_v ever_o be_v of_o great_a authority_n in_o the_o church_n which_o be_v cite_v in_o the_o margin_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o trent_n pag._n 35._o and_n this_o be_v it_o which_o the_o synod_n of_o trent_n say_v that_o in_o that_o sacrament_n jesus_n christ_n true_a god_n &_o true_o man_n be_v real_o &_o substantial_o contain_v under_o the_o form_n of_o those_o sensible_a thing_n yet_o not_o according_a to_o the_o natural_a manner_n of_o exist_v but_o sacramental_o and_o by_o that_o way_n of_o exist_v which_o though_o we_o can_v express_v in_o word_n yet_o may_v we_o by_o cogitation_n illustrate_v by_o faith_n be_v certain_a that_o to_o god_n it_o be_v possible_a and_o the_o council_n have_v find_v word_n to_o express_v it_o that_o there_o be_v make_v a_o change_n of_o the_o whole_a substance_n of_o the_o bread_n into_o the_o body_n and_o the_o whole_a substance_n of_o wine_n into_o the_o blood_n which_o conversion_n the_o catholic_n church_n call_v transubstantiation_n pag._n 79._o when_o the_o synod_n of_o trent_n say_v that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v to_o be_v adore_v with_o divine_a worship_n it_o intend_v no_o more_o but_o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n himself_o be_v to_o be_v adore_v i_o will_v add_v no_o more_o but_o that_o which_o tell_v you_o who_o be_v a_o papist_n with_o the_o grotian_o and_o who_o be_v none_o pag._n 15._o in_o that_o epistle_n grotius_n by_o papist_n mean_v those_o that_o without_o any_o difference_n do_v approve_v of_o all_o the_o say_n and_o do_n of_o pope_n for_o honour_n or_o lucre_n sake_n as_o be_v usual_a ibid._n he_o tell_v we_o that_o by_o papist_n he_o mean_v not_o they_o that_o save_v the_o right_a of_o king_n and_o bishop_n do_v give_v to_o the_o pope_n or_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o primacy_n which_o ancient_a custom_n and_o canon_n and_o the_o edict_n of_o ancient_a emperor_n and_o king_n assign_v they_o which_o primacy_n be_v not_o so_o much_o the_o bishop_n as_o the_o very_a roman_a church_n prefer_v before_o all_o other_o by_o common_a consent_n it_o be_v well_o it_o have_v so_o mutable_a a_o foundation_n so_o liberius_n the_o bishop_n be_v so_o lapse_v that_o he_o be_v dead_a to_o the_o church_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n retain_v its_o right_n and_o defend_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n this_o and_o much_o more_o i_o have_v give_v the_o reader_n before_o in_o latin_a but_o because_o mr._n pierce_n think_v that_o i_o wrong_v grotius_n if_o you_o have_v it_o not_o in_o english_a i_o have_v bear_v so_o much_o respect_n to_o his_o word_n and_o to_o the_o reader_n as_o to_o remove_v the_o wrong_n and_o thus_o far_o to_o satisfy_v his_o desire_n have_v tell_v you_o some_o of_o the_o occasion_n of_o this_o writing_n i_o shall_v add_v somewhat_o of_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o but_o the_o less_o because_o i_o have_v give_v you_o so_o much_o of_o they_o already_o in_o my_o foresay_a discovery_n of_o the_o grotian_n religion_n 1._o my_o principal_a reason_n be_v that_o before_o express_v that_o popery_n may_v be_v pull_v up_o by_o the_o very_a root_n for_o italian_n french_a and_o all_o build_v on_o this_o that_o the_o church_n must_v have_v one_o visible_a head_n 2._o that_o i_o may_v take_v in_o those_o party_n of_o the_o papist_n that_o i_o have_v pass_v by_o or_o say_v less_o to_o in_o the_o former_a part_n of_o the_o book_n 3._o because_o i_o see_v what_o influence_n the_o conceit_n that_o i_o dispute_v against_o have_v on_o the_o mind_n of_o many_o well-meaning_a less_o judicious_a people_n 4._o because_o i_o perceive_v in_o part_n what_o influence_n the_o design_n of_o grotius_n have_v upon_o england_n in_o the_o change_n that_o be_v the_o occasion_n of_o our_o late_a war_n he_o say_v himself_o discuss_v pag._n 16._o that_o the_o labour_n of_o grotius_n for_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o displease_v to_o many_o equal_a man_n many_o know_v at_o paris_n and_o many_o in_o all_o france_n many_o in_o poland_n and_o germany_n and_o not_o a_o few_o in_o england_n that_o be_v placid_a and_o lover_n of_o peace_n for_o as_o for_o the_o now-raging_a brownist_n and_o other_o like_v they_o with_o who_o dr._n rivet_n better_a agree_v then_o with_o the_o bishop_n of_o england_n who_o can_v desire_v to_o please_v they_o that_o be_v not_o touch_v with_o their_o venom_n so_o that_o he_o have_v episcopal_a factor_n here_o in_o england_n and_o whereas_o some_o tell_v i_o that_o grotius_n be_v no_o papist_n because_o he_o profess_v his_o high_a esteem_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o say_v they_o have_v church-preferment_n here_o offer_v he_o and_o think_v to_o have_v accept_v it_o i_o answer_v 1._o either_o it_o be_v grotius_n in_o the_o first_o edition_n or_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o the_o second_o edition_n then_o in_o the_o press_n that_o this_o must_v be_v speak_v of_o if_o true_a 2._o be_v not_o franciscus_n a_o sancta_fw-la clara_n still_o the_o queen_n ghostly_a father_n a_o papist_n for_o all_o he_o reconcile_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o that_o of_o rome_n grotius_n and_o he_o do_v plain_o manage_v the_o same_o design_n 3._o mr._n pierce_n assure_v you_o by_o his_o defence_n that_o grotius_n have_v still_o his_o follower_n in_o england_n of_o the_o party_n that_o he_o call_v the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o be_v it_o any_o more_o proof_n that_o grotius_n be_v a_o protestant_n for_o join_v with_o they_o then_o that_o they_o be_v papist_n that_o join_v with_o he_o be_v not_o his_o doctrine_n here_o give_v you_o in_o his_o english_v word_n do_v you_o doubt_v whether_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v papist_n this_o make_v i_o remember_v the_o word_n of_o the_o late_a king_n to_o the_o marquis_n of_o worcester_n when_o the_o marbuess_n come_v into_o the_o room_n to_o a_o appoint_a conference_n about_o religion_n with_o he_o &_o lean_v on_o d._n bayly_n arm_n he_o tell_v the_o king_n that_o he_o come_v lean_v on_o a_o doctor_n of_o his_o own_o church_n and_o the_o king_n reply_v my_o lord_n i_o know_v not_o whether_o i_o shall_v think_v the_o better_a of_o you_o for_o the_o doctor_n sake_n or_o the_o worse_a of_o the_o doctor_n for_o your_o sake_n or_o to_o this_o purpose_n and_o indeed_o the_o doctor_n quick_o show_v by_o profess_v himself_o a_o papist_n what_o a_o episcopal_a divine_a he_o be_v and_o i_o think_v we_o have_v as_o fair_a advantage_n to_o resolve_v we_o whether_o to_o think_v the_o better_a of_o grotius_n for_o the_o church_n of_o england_n sake_n or_o the_o worse_a of_o those_o that_o he_o call_v the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o that_o be_v of_o his_o mind_n for_o grotius_n sake_n in_o a_o late_a treatise_n de_fw-fr antiqua_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la brittanicae_fw-la libertate_fw-la diatribe_n write_v by_o i._n b._n a_o divine_a of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o print_v at_o bruges_n 1656_o pag._n 34_o 35._o thes_n 4._o it_o be_v aver_v that_o since_o the_o ancient_a liberty_n of_o the_o british_a church_n be_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n resume_v remain_v catholic_n in_o all_o other_o thing_n it_o may_v retain_v that_o liberty_n without_o lose_v its_o catholicism_n and_o without_o any_o note_n of_o schism_n or_o heresy_n this_o liberty_n than_o be_v the_o reformation_n and_o this_o he_o say_v be_v maintain_v by_o barnes_n a_o papist_n and_o benedictine_n monk_n and_o priest_n in_o a_o m._n s._n entitle_v catholico-romanus_n pacificus_fw-la c._n 3._o and_o that_o for_o this_o sober_a work_n of_o his_o the_o peaceable_a monk_n though_o of_o unblamed_a life_n and_o unspotted_a fame_n be_v snatch_v out_o of_o the_o midst_n of_o paris_n and_o strip_v of_o his_o habit_n and_o bind_v on_o a_o horseback_n like_o a_o calf_n and_o violent_o carry_v into_o flanders_n and_o so_o to_o rome_n and_o so_o to_o the_o inquisition_n and_o then_o put_v among_o the_o bedlam_n where_o he_o die_v and_o not_o content_v with_o his_o death_n they_o defame_v he_o to_o have_v die_v mad_a though_o rome_n give_v peace_n no_o better_a entertainment_n the_o learned_a author_n think_v that_o france_n will_v and_o therefore_o add_v concern_v the_o french_a church_n quâcum_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d optanda_fw-la foret_fw-la etiamnum_fw-la veteris_fw-la redintegratio_fw-la concordiae_fw-la quam_fw-la constat_fw-la plus_fw-la mille_fw-la ab_fw-la hinc_fw-la annis_fw-la amicissime_fw-la intercessisse_fw-la inter_fw-la
the_o church_n live_v under_o mahometan_n and_o other_o infidel_n that_o will_v not_o give_v they_o leave_v to_o travail_v so_o far_o into_o the_o country_n of_o christian_a prince_n on_o such_o occasion_n they_o hate_v we_o and_o our_o religion_n they_o be_v oft_o at_o war_n with_o we_o and_o then_o will_v hang_v those_o bishop_n as_o intelligencer_n that_o shall_v offer_v to_o come_v among_o we_o 4._o and_o they_o must_v many_o of_o they_o pass_v through_o the_o country_n of_o other_o prince_n that_o be_v infidel_n and_o oft_o in_o war_n with_o the_o part_n which_o they_o come_v from_o or_o go_v to_o and_o it_o can_v be_v expect_v that_o in_o such_o case_n they_o shall_v allow_v they_o passage_n through_o their_o country_n if_o one_o do_v all_o will_v not_o when_o poor_a lithgow_n have_v travail_v nineteen_o year_n he_o be_v torture_v strappado_v and_o disjoint_v and_o make_v a_o cripple_n at_o malaga_n in_o the_o spanish_a inquisition_n and_o thank_v god_n and_o the_o english_a ambassador_n that_o he_o speed_v so_o well_o 5._o even_o at_o home_n in_o europe_n the_o prince_n be_v so_o common_o in_o war_n as_o be_v france_n spain_n venice_n sweden_n denmark_n poland_n the_o emperor_n brandenburg_n holland_n portugal_n england_n transylvania_n etc._n etc._n at_o this_o very_a day_n that_o there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o probability_n that_o they_o shall_v all_o or_o half_a consent_n to_o have_v so_o many_o of_o their_o subject_n pass_v into_o their_o enemy_n country_n to_o reside_v so_o long_o jealousy_n raise_v by_o particular_a interest_n will_v make_v it_o treason_n 6._o moreover_o many_o prince_n understand_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o power_n to_o call_v such_o council_n nor_o any_o man_n else_o and_o they_o know_v the_o design_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o subject_v the_o world_n to_o himself_o and_o therefore_o they_o will_v abhor_v that_o their_o subject_n shall_v travail_v so_o far_o at_o his_o call_n that_o have_v such_o design_n or_o at_o another_o man_n that_o have_v no_o authority_n to_o call_v they_o this_o have_v make_v the_o emperor_n of_o habassia_n so_o resolute_o resist_v the_o pope_n pretension_n as_o godignus_n maffaeus_n and_o other_o do_v declare_v few_o prince_n will_v endure_v to_o have_v their_o subject_n bring_v under_o a_o foreign_a power_n 7._o and_o if_o you_o suppose_v all_o the_o bishop_n come_v to_o the_o council_n the_o very_a number_n out_o of_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n to_o make_v any_o thing_n like_o a_o general_n council_n will_v be_v so_o great_a as_o will_v be_v unfit_a for_o one_o or_o two_o or_o ten_o or_o twenty_o council_n house_n or_o assembly_n 8._o and_o they_o will_v be_v uncapable_a of_o confer_v through_o diversity_n of_o language_n few_o of_o the_o abassine_n egyptian_n syrian_n armenian_n or_o of_o most_o of_o the_o world_n understand_v and_o speak_v any_o language_n that_o will_v common_o be_v understand_v and_o use_v in_o a_o council_n nor_o be_v it_o possible_a to_o do_v it_o by_o interpreter_n for_o so_o many_o interpreter_n can_v be_v use_v to_o tell_v all_o that_o understand_v not_o what_o every_o man_n say_v and_o to_o expound_v their_o mind_n to_o other_o this_o will_v waste_v a_o age_n in_o a_o council_n so_o that_o such_o a_o council_n will_v be_v a_o very_a babel_n 9_o and_o council_n use_v to_o be_v so_o long_o that_o it_o can_v be_v expect_v that_o after_o so_o many_o year_n journey_n old_a man_n shall_v live_v to_o see_v the_o issue_n or_o do_v any_o great_a matter_n there_o eighteen_o year_n at_o trent_n will_v consume_v a_o great_a many_o of_o the_o bishop_n how_o many_o even_a of_o the_o pope_n own_o legate_n die_v before_o that_o council_n can_v be_v finish_v 10._o and_o if_o they_o shall_v live_v to_o see_v the_o end_n can_v you_o dream_v that_o they_o shall_v live_v to_o perform_v the_o like_a tedious_a dangerous_a journey_n and_o voyage_n to_o bring_v back_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n to_o their_o church_n judge_v now_o whether_o such_o council_n be_v not_o natural_o impossible_a i_o will_v add_v but_o this_o no_o man_n can_v be_v compel_v and_o to_o make_v all_o the_o world_n at_o once_o agree_v to_o so_o difficult_a a_o task_n and_o agree_v upon_o the_o time_n and_o place_n must_v be_v a_o miracle_n one_o will_v be_v for_o it_o and_o another_o against_o it_o one_o for_o one_o time_n and_o place_n and_o another_o for_o another_o through_o most_o of_o the_o world_n we_o see_v how_o hardly_o any_o two_o prince_n can_v agree_v upon_o time_n place_n and_o all_o circumstance_n in_o their_o treaty_n 2._o let_v we_o next_o inquire_v of_o what_o necessity_n such_o a_o council_n be_v if_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o church_n government_n it_o be_v either_o to_o make_v law_n or_o to_o execute_v they_o but_o for_o neither_o of_o these_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o necessary_a 1._o christ_n have_v make_v we_o law_n already_o sufficient_a for_o salvation_n and_o i_o hope_v he_o have_v not_o constitute_v so_o loose_a a_o society_n and_o leave_v his_o body_n to_o such_o mutation_n as_o that_o they_o must_v so_o frequent_o have_v new_a law_n and_o if_o it_o must_v sure_o it_o must_v be_v from_o their_o sovereign_n who_o have_v reserve_v the_o legislative_a power_n to_o himself_o as_o his_o prerogative_n legislation_n be_v the_o high_a act_n of_o supremacy_n and_o chief_a flower_n in_o the_o crown_n of_o sovereignty_n the_o church_n be_v christ_n subject_n and_o shall_v subject_n make_v their_o own_o law_n scripture_n be_v sufficient_a if_o this_o be_v all_o that_o we_o need_v general_a council_n for_o to_o make_v universal_a law_n to_o the_o church_n we_o can_v spare_v they_o as_o well_o as_o traitor_n in_o a_o commonwealth_n and_o for_o execution_n of_o law_n it_o be_v either_o magisterial_a by_o force_n of_o the_o sword_n and_o this_o they_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o it_o be_v the_o prince_n right_a or_o it_o be_v for_o the_o excommunicate_a church_n offender_n and_o to_o cast_v they_o out_o of_o particular_a church_n be_v the_o work_n of_o the_o pastor_n of_o those_o church_n other_o can_v know_v the_o person_n and_o hear_v the_o cause_n if_o all_o church-cause_n shall_v come_v to_o a_o general_n council_n million_o of_o man_n must_v be_v attend_v they_o at_o once_o and_o if_o it_o be_v to_o judge_v who_o shall_v be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n and_o what_o church_n themselves_o be_v to_o be_v excommunicate_v the_o synod_n of_o neighbour_n pastor_n be_v to_o do_v as_o much_o of_o that_o as_o be_v to_o be_v do_v where_o then_o be_v the_o necessity_n of_o such_o council_n at_o such_o rate_n augustine_n say_v that_o drunkenness_n in_o his_o time_n be_v grow_v so_o strong_a that_o there_o must_v be_v a_o council_n to_o suppress_v it_o can_v they_o do_v such_o feat_n as_o to_o cure_v drunkenness_n whoredom_n covetousness_n pride_n i_o will_v be_v for_o they_o 3._o if_o a_o general_n council_n be_v call_v it_o must_v be_v a_o most_o unjust_a assembly_n for_o 1._o it_o will_v be_v guilty_a of_o cruelty_n and_o destroy_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n by_o kill_v so_o many_o of_o the_o pastor_n as_o aforesaid_a 2._o it_o will_v be_v guilty_a of_o cruelty_n and_o church_n destoy_v by_o the_o starve_a and_o desertion_n of_o the_o flock_n at_o home_n what_o will_v become_v of_o the_o poor_a people_n soul_n when_o they_o be_v leave_v to_o the_o wolf_n to_o heretic_n and_o deceiver_n and_o to_o the_o temptation_n of_o their_o own_o flesh_n and_o the_o world_n be_v for_o ten_o or_o twenty_o year_n or_o for_o ever_o deprive_v of_o their_o pastor_n under_o pretence_n of_o a_o general_n council_n basil_n in_o his_o seventi_v epistle_n tell_v the_o western_a bishop_n that_o they_o of_o the_o east_n can_v not_o come_v to_o solicit_v their_o own_o cause_n with_o they_o for_o say_v he_o if_o any_o one_o of_o we_o n._n b._n do_v for_o the_o least_o moment_n leave_v his_o church_n he_o present_o leave_v his_o people_n to_o deceiver_n and_o on_o this_o ground_n he_o show_v that_o they_o can_v not_o so_o much_o as_o spare_v bishop_n to_o be_v mere_a messenger_n to_o they_o much_o less_o can_v they_o have_v spare_v a_o sufficient_a number_n to_o stay_v seven_o or_o ten_o year_n together_o if_o any_o think_v that_o such_o necessity_n be_v unusual_a he_o know_v not_o the_o world_n and_o council_n be_v most_o useful_a if_o ever_o when_o necessity_n be_v great_a 3._o in_o council_n thing_n be_v carry_v by_o vote_n and_o so_o abassia_n armenia_n mexico_n and_o place_n so_o remote_a that_o they_o can_v send_v but_o one_o or_o two_o will_v be_v out-voted_n by_o that_o corner_n of_o the_o world_n where_o the_o council_n be_v call_v that_o can_v send_v in_o proportionable_o a_o hundred_o for_o one_o and_o so_o under_o the_o name_n of_o
head_n or_o sovereign_n of_o the_o church_n the_o major_n be_v of_o unquestionable_a verity_n in_o politic_n legislation_n be_v the_o first_o and_o chief_a work_n of_o sovereignty_n the_o minor_a be_v prove_v 1._o ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la by_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o teach_v chief_a opponent_n grotius_n de_fw-fr imperio_fw-la summar_n potest_fw-la do_v purposely_o maintain_v it_o and_o so_o do_v other_o see_v of_o this_o lud._n molinaeus_n new_a book_n suppose_v against_o the_o presbyterian_o his_o paraenesis_n 2._o it_o be_v the_o high_a prerogative_n of_o christ_n the_o true_a king_n and_o sovereign_a of_o the_o church_n which_o none_o must_v arrogate_v he_o be_v faithful_a in_o all_o his_o house_n as_o be_v moses_n his_o law_n be_v perfect_a it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v the_o man_n of_o god_n perfect_a even_o a_o sufficient_a rule_n of_o faith_n and_o life_n no_o man_n must_v add_v thereto_o nor_o take_v aught_o therefrom_o but_o do_v whatsoever_o he_o have_v command_v deut._n 12._o 32._o to_o the_o law_n and_o to_o the_o testimony_n if_o they_o speak_v not_o according_a to_o these_o it_o be_v because_o there_o be_v no_o light_n in_o they_o isa_n 8._o 20._o object_n but_o man_n may_v make_v by-law_n under_o christ_n and_o his_o law_n answ_n true_a but_o as_o those_o be_v in_o this_o case_n no_o proper_a law_n so_o no_o man_n or_o man_n may_v make_v they_o for_o the_o unversal_a church_n for_o the_o business_n of_o those_o law_n be_v only_o to_o determine_v of_o circumstance_n which_o god_n have_v make_v necessary_a in_o genere_fw-la and_o leave_v to_o the_o determination_n of_o man_n in_o specie_fw-la and_o we_o may_v well_o know_v that_o there_o be_v some_o special_a reason_n why_o christ_n do_v not_o determine_v of_o these_o himself_n and_o the_o reason_n be_v plain_a even_o because_o that_o they_o depend_v so_o much_o on_o the_o several_a state_n capacity_n custom_n etc._n etc._n of_o man_n that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v vary_v according_o in_o several_a time_n and_o place_n if_o one_o stand_v law_n will_v have_v fit_v all_o the_o world_n or_o all_o age_n in_o these_o matter_n christ_n will_v have_v make_v it_o himself_o for_o if_o you_o say_v he_o make_v some_o law_n and_o neglect_v other_o that_o be_v of_o the_o like_a kind_n and_o may_v as_o well_o have_v be_v do_v by_o himself_o you_o make_v he_o imperfect_a and_o insufficient_a to_o his_o work_n and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o fit_a that_o one_o universal_a law_n be_v make_v for_o the_o world_n than_o a_o council_n must_v not_o make_v it_o and_o as_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o christ_n law_n so_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n declare_v it_o that_o these_o matter_n must_v not_o be_v determine_v of_o by_o a_o universal_a law_n shall_v there_o be_v a_o universal_a law_n to_o determine_v what_o day_n of_o the_o week_n or_o what_o hour_n of_o the_o day_n every_o lecture_n or_o occasional_a sermon_n shall_v be_v on_o or_o what_o place_n every_o congregation_n shall_v meet_v in_o or_o where_o the_o minister_n shall_v stand_v to_o preach_v or_o what_o chapter_n he_o shall_v read_v each_o day_n or_o what_o text_n he_o shall_v preach_v on_o or_o how_o long_o whether_o by_o a_o hourglass_n or_o without_o in_o what_o habit_n of_o apparel_n particular_o when_o many_o a_o poor_a man_n must_v wear_v such_o as_o he_o can_v get_v yea_o or_o what_o gesture_n or_o posture_n of_o body_n to_o use_v when_o that_o gesture_n in_o one_o country_n signify_v reverence_n which_o in_o another_o rather_o signify_v neglect_n with_o abundance_n the_o like_a and_o the_o same_o be_v plain_a from_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o pastoral_n office_n every_o bishop_n or_o pastor_n be_v make_v by_o christ_n the_o ruler_n of_o the_o flock_n in_o such_o case_n and_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o obey_v he_o heb._n 13._o 17._o and_o therefore_o a_o general_n council_n must_v leave_v they_o their_o work_n to_o do_v which_o christ_n have_v put_v upon_o they_o and_o not_o take_v it_o out_o of_o their_o hand_n especial_o when_o being_n in_o the_o place_n and_o see_v the_o variety_n of_o circumstance_n they_o be_v more_o competent_a judge_n then_o a_o general_n council_n at_o such_o distance_n the_o plain_a truth_n be_v christ_n have_v leave_v they_o none_o of_o that_o work_n to_o do_v which_o belong_v to_o a_o head_n or_o sovereign_n but_o they_o make_v work_v for_o themselves_o that_o there_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v a_o necessity_n of_o a_o power_n to_o do_v it_o the_o church_n need_v none_o of_o their_o law_n let_v we_o have_v but_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o the_o civil_a law_n of_o man_n and_o the_o guidance_n of_o particular_a pastor_n pro_fw-la tempore_fw-la and_o the_o fraternal_a consultation_n and_o agreement_n of_o council_n not_o to_o make_v any_o more_o work_n but_o to_o do_v this_o foresay_a work_n unanimous_o and_o the_o church_n can_v bear_v no_o more_o there_o be_v nothing_o leave_v for_o legislator_n ecclesiastical_a to_o do_v we_o can_v spare_v their_o law_n and_o therefore_o their_o power_n and_o work_v their_o business_n be_v but_o to_o make_v snare_n and_o burden_n for_o we_o and_o therefore_o we_o can_v live_v without_o they_o and_o can_v believe_v that_o the_o felicity_n or_o unity_n or_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v in_o they_o argum._n 7._o all_o the_o inferior_a officer_n do_v derive_v their_o power_n from_o the_o supreme_a all_o the_o other_o officer_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v not_o derive_v their_o power_n from_o the_o pope_n or_o a_o general_n council_n therefore_o a_o pope_n or_o general_n council_n be_v not_o the_o supreme_a the_o major_n be_v a_o unquestioned_a maxim_n in_o politic_n it_o be_v essential_a to_o the_o sovereaign_a to_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o power_n to_o all_o under_o he_o yea_o if_o it_o be_v but_o a_o depute_v derive_v sovereignty_n secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la so_o call_v as_o the_o viceroy_n of_o mexico_n naples_n etc._n etc._n yet_o so_o far_o he_o must_v be_v the_o fountain_n of_o all_o inferior_a power_n the_o minor_a be_v maintain_v by_o most_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n every_o bishop_n or_o presbyter_n have_v his_o power_n immediate_o from_o jesus_n christ_n as_o the_o efficient_a cause_n though_o man_n must_v be_v a_o occasion_n or_o causa_fw-la sine_fw-la qua_fw-la non_fw-la or_o per_fw-la accidens_fw-la the_o italian_a bishop_n in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n can_v not_o carry_v it_o against_o the_o spaniard_n that_o the_o pope_n only_o as_o head_n be_v immediate_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la and_o the_o rest_n but_o mediante_n papa_n moreover_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o prove_v out_o of_o scripture_n that_o god_n never_o set_v up_o any_o sovereign_a power_n in_o his_o church_n personal_a or_o collective_a to_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o all_o other_o church_n power_n nor_o send_v we_o to_o have_v recourse_n to_o any_o such_o for_o it_o nor_o can_v they_o prove_v such_o a_o power_n on_o who_o it_o be_v incumbent_n and_o last_o its_o most_o easy_a to_o prove_v de_fw-fr facto_fw-la that_o the_o bishop_n or_o presbyter_n now_o in_o the_o several_a church_n in_o the_o world_n do_v not_o receive_v and_o do_v not_o hold_v their_o power_n from_o any_o such_o visible_a head_n whether_o pope_n or_o council_n though_o the_o popeling_n do_v yet_o so_o do_v not_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n who_o be_v not_o therefore_o no_o minister_n or_o no_o church_n of_o christ_n whatever_o these_o bare_a affirmer_n and_o pretender_n may_v imagine_v nor_o be_v all_o the_o ministerial_a action_n in_o the_o world_n null_n which_o be_v not_o do_v by_o a_o power_n from_o he_o and_o even_o the_o papist_n themselves_o will_v few_o of_o they_o pretend_v to_o receive_v their_o several_a power_n of_o priesthood_n from_o a_o general_n council_n this_o therefore_o be_v not_o the_o sovereign_a power_n or_o head_n of_o the_o church_n argum._n 8._o the_o head_n or_o sovereign_a power_n have_v the_o final_o decisive_a judgement_n and_o in_o great_a cause_n all_o must_v or_o may_v appeal_v to_o they_o a_o general_n council_n have_v not_o the_o final_o decisive_a judgement_n nor_o may_v all_o man_n in_o great_a cause_n appeal_v to_o they_o therefore_o a_o general_n council_n be_v not_o the_o head_n or_o sovereign_a power_n the_o major_n be_v undeniable_a the_o minor_a be_v prove_v 1._o in_o that_o it_o be_v not_o know_v nor_o have_v the_o world_n any_o rule_n or_o way_n to_o know_v in_o what_o case_n we_o must_v appeal_v to_o a_o general_n council_n and_o what_o not_o and_o what_o be_v their_o proper_a work_n 2._o in_o that_o a_o appeal_n to_o they_o be_v a_o absolute_a evasion_n of_o the_o guilty_a and_o in_o vain_a to_o the_o innocent_a because_o of_o the_o rarity_n of_o such_o council_n or_o rather_o the_o nullity_n 3._o because_o the_o prosecute_n of_o such_o a_o appeal_n
imperial_a city_n 3._o they_o give_v equal_a privilege_n to_o the_o seat_n of_o constantinople_n because_o it_o be_v now_o become_v new_a rome_n 4._o that_o the_o roman_a legate_n will_v not_o be_v present_a at_o this_o act_n 5._o but_o the_o next_o day_n when_o they_o do_v appear_v and_o pretend_v that_o this_o act_n be_v force_v the_o bishop_n all_o cry_v no_o man_n be_v compel_v it_o be_v a_o just_a decree_n we_o all_o say_v thus_o we_o all_o approve_v it_o let_v that_o stand_v that_o be_v decree_v it_o be_v all_o right_a 6._o here_o special_o note_v that_o this_o general_a council_n think_v they_o need_v not_o the_o pope_n approbation_n for_o the_o validity_n of_o their_o decree_n when_o they_o pass_v they_o and_o take_v they_o for_o valid_a even_o contrary_a to_o the_o will_n of_o the_o pope_n speak_v you_o that_o bear_v the_o least_o reverence_n to_o a_o general_n council_n do_v this_o council_n think_v that_o their_o decree_n be_v invalid_a if_o the_o pope_n approve_v they_o not_o you_o see_v if_o you_o be_v not_o wilful_o blind_a they_o do_v not_o and_o who_o be_v now_o to_o be_v believe_v bellarmine_n and_o his_o party_n and_o the_o present_a prevalent_a party_n of_o the_o papist_n that_o say_v council_n not_o approve_v by_o the_o pope_n be_v invalid_a or_o without_o authority_n or_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n that_o think_v otherwise_o 7._o note_v that_o the_o pope_n legate_n call_v this_o a_o humble_v and_o depress_v and_o wrong_v of_o the_o papacy_n and_o therefore_o enter_v their_o dissent_n see_v bellarmine_n confession_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr pontif._n cap._n 17._o binnius_n note_n on_o this_o council_n baronius_n a_o 451._o 8._o note_v also_o that_o the_o shift_n of_o bellarm._n binnius_n baronius_n becanus_n gretser_n etc._n etc._n be_v apparent_o false_a that_o say_v this_o canon_n be_v surreptitious_o bring_v into_o the_o council_n for_o aetius_n act._n 16._o open_o profess_v the_o contrary_a and_o all_o the_o bishop_n profess_v their_o consent_n to_o the_o last_o 9_o note_v also_o that_o this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o four_o great_a council_n which_o the_o papist_n themselves_o compare_v to_o the_o four_o gospel_n and_o in_o it_o be_v six_o hundred_o and_o thirty_o father_n 10._o note_v also_o that_o this_o great_a council_n be_v against_o they_o and_o on_o the_o protestant_a side_n in_o the_o very_a foundation_n of_o all_o our_o difference_n whether_o the_o roman_a privilege_n be_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la or_o humano_fw-la and_o though_o it_o be_v but_o the_o privilege_n and_o not_o the_o now_o claim_v vicarship_n that_o be_v in_o question_n yet_o the_o conclusion_n be_v the_o strong_a against_o they_o because_o the_o lesser_a be_v deny_v but_o their_o last_o shift_n be_v that_o this_o clause_n or_o canon_n be_v not_o approve_v and_o so_o be_v null_a 1._o mark_v then_o you_o that_o write_v this_o manuscript_n that_o we_o have_v general_a council_n against_o you_o but_o we_o want_v the_o pope_n approbation_n and_o in_o good_a sadness_n be_v that_o the_o meaning_n of_o your_o question_n what_o council_n that_o be_v what_o pope_n condemn_v our_o church_n can_v it_o be_v expect_v that_o this_o one_o man_n shall_v condemn_v himself_o or_o can_v you_o be_v no_o heretic_n till_o then_o 2._o but_o let_v it_o be_v so_o this_o once_o do_v not_o your_o pope_n approve_v of_o this_o council_n when_o gregory_n the_o first_o do_v liken_v it_o with_o the_o other_o three_o to_o the_o four_o gospel_n and_o say_v of_o this_o tota_n devotione_fw-la complector_fw-la integerrima_fw-la approbatione_fw-la custodio_fw-la i_o embrace_v it_o with_o my_o whole_a devotion_n i_o keep_v it_o with_o most_o entire_a approbation_n greg._n 1._o regist_n l._n 1._o epist_n 24._o cite_v in_o the_o decree_n dist_n 15._o c._n 2._o i_o think_v this_o be_v express_o a_o full_a approbation_n not_o without_o except_v any_o part_n only_o but_o exclude_v all_o such_o exception_n and_o the_o like_a approbation_n of_o gelasius_n in_o the_o roman_a council_n be_v cite_v there_o also_o in_o the_o decree_n ibid._n pag._n 33._o i_o do_v also_o before_o instance_n the_o six_o general_n council_n against_o you_o approve_v by_o pope_n adrian_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o tharasius_n in_o the_o second_o nicene_n council_n and_o indeed_o it_o be_v no_o hard_a matter_n to_o prove_v you_o condemn_v by_o your_o own_o pope_n also_o if_o you_o can_v but_o understand_v the_o plain_a word_n in_o a_o matter_n that_o be_v against_o your_o opinion_n and_o will_n there_o need_v no_o talk_n to_o persuade_v you_o that_o pope_n gregory_n the_o first_o condemn_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n or_o patriarch_n profess_v earnest_o that_o he_o be_v the_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n that_o will_v usurp_v it_o but_o the_o plain_a truth_n be_v as_o sad_a experience_n teach_v we_o no_o word_n of_o father_n pope_n or_o council_n much_o less_o of_o scripture_n be_v intelligible_a to_o you_o when_o your_o will_n be_v against_o the_o matter_n but_o we_o may_v true_o say_v of_o you_o that_o lie_v all_o on_o the_o will_n of_o the_o pope_n as_o augustine_n observator_fw-la your_o lodovicus_n vives_n free_o speak_v in_o schol_a in_o august_n lib._n 20._o de_fw-la civit._fw-la dei_fw-la cap._n 26._o those_o be_v take_v by_o they_o for_o edict_n and_o council_n which_o make_v for_o they_o or_o be_v on_o their_o side_n the_o rest_n they_o no_o more_o regard_n than_o a_o meeting_n of_o woman_n in_o a_o workhouse_n or_o a_o wash_a place_n do_v you_o understand_v this_o language_n of_o one_o of_o your_o own_o but_o too_o honest_a to_o have_v much_o company_n well_o but_o you_o have_v a_o three_o question_n by_o what_o authority_n be_v she_o otherwise_o reprove_v answ_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o that_o precept_n levit._n 19_o 17._o and_o many_o the_o like_a by_o the_o same_o authority_n that_o paul_n reprove_v peter_n gal._n 2._o and_o withstand_v he_o to_o the_o face_n by_o such_o authority_n as_o any_o man_n may_v seek_v to_o quench_v a_o fire_n in_o his_o neighbour_n house_n or_o pull_v a_o man_n out_o of_o the_o water_n that_o be_v drown_v or_o as_o any_o one_o pastor_n may_v reprove_v another_o when_o he_o sin_v by_o the_o same_o authority_n as_o irenaeus_n rebuke_v victor_n and_o the_o asian_a bishop_n withstand_v he_o and_o as_o cyprian_a and_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n reprove_v stephen_n and_o the_o rest_n aforecited_a do_v what_o they_o do_v by_o as_o good_a authority_n as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n condemn_v the_o greek_a church_n do_v the_o greek_a church_n and_o many_o another_o condemn_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n 3._o the_o next_o case_n be_v about_o the_o roman_a schism_n to_o your_o question_n i_o answer_v 1._o to_o question_v whether_o papist_n be_v schismatic_n be_v to_o question_v whether_o ethiopian_n be_v black_a do_v you_o not_o at_o this_o day_n divide_v from_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n save_v yourselves_o do_v you_o not_o unchurch_n most_o of_o the_o christian_n on_o earth_n o_o dreadful_a presumption_n when_o christ_n be_v so_o tender_a of_o his_o interest_n and_o his_o servant_n and_o be_v bind_v as_o it_o be_v by_o so_o many_o promise_n to_o save_v they_o and_o not_o forsake_v they_o you_o ask_v what_o church_n you_o leave_v and_o when_o be_v it_o and_o who_o company_n senseless_a question_n by_o a_o church_n if_o you_o mean_v the_o universal_a church_n there_o be_v but_o one_o in_o all_o and_o therefore_o one_o universal_a church_n can_v forsake_v another_o but_o when_o part_n of_o it_o forsake_v the_o other_o part_n and_o arrogate_v the_o title_n of_o the_o whole_a to_o themselves_o do_v you_o doubt_v whether_o this_o be_v schism_n if_o you_o mean_v a_o particular_a church_n how_o can_v spain_n italy_n france_n and_o many_o more_o kingdom_n go_v out_o of_o a_o particular_a church_n that_o contain_v so_o many_o hundred_o particular_a church_n in_o they_o no_o more_o than_o london_n can_v go_v out_o of_o paul_n church_n the_o catholic_n be_v but_o one_o contain_v all_o true_a christian_n on_o earth_n and_o you_o have_v be_v guilty_a of_o a_o most_o horrid_a schism_n as_o ever_o the_o church_n know_v for_o 1._o you_o have_v set_v up_o a_o church_n in_o the_o church_n a_o universal_a church_n in_o the_o universal_a church_n a_o new_a form_n destructive_a to_o the_o old_a your_o pope_n as_o christ-representative_a be_v now_o a_o essential_a part_n of_o it_o and_o no_o man_n be_v a_o member_n of_o it_o that_o be_v not_o a_o member_n of_o the_o pope_n body_n and_o subject_n to_o he_o so_o that_o even_o the_o antipde_n and_o the_o poor_a abassian_o that_o know_v not_o whether_o the_o pope_n be_v fish_n or_o flesh_n or_o never_o hear_v of_o such_o a_o name_n or_o thing_n must_v all_o be_v unchristened_a unchurch_v and_o damn_v if_o you_o be_v judge_n yea_o and_o bellarmine_n tell_v we_o which_o indeed_o your_o
faith_n etc._n etc._n so_o than_o you_o see_v there_o be_v but_o one_o lord_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o the_o pope_n or_o council_n be_v not_o lord_n in_o name_n or_o deed_n and_o apostle_n prophet_n pastor_n and_o doctor_n be_v the_o member_n contradi_v guish_v from_o this_o one_o lord_n and_o who_o diversity_n be_v purposely_o mention_v they_o be_v the_o matter_n or_o parcel_n that_o must_v have_v their_o unity_n in_o some_o other_o but_o not_o the_o church_n to_o be_v unite_v in_o they_o here_o be_v then_o no_o mention_n among_o all_o these_o one_o of_o one_o earthly_a head_n whether_o pope_n or_o council_n not_o of_o one_o apostle_n that_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o rest_n if_o such_o a_o thing_n have_v ever_o come_v into_o the_o apostle_n mind_n he_o will_v sure_o have_v mention_v it_o on_o such_o occasion_n as_o these_o and_o not_o have_v quite_o forget_v it_o yea_o and_o contradict_v it_o so_o evident_o 1_o cor._n 6._o 15_o 17._o our_o body_n be_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n not_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o he_o that_o be_v join_v to_o the_o lord_n be_v one_o spirit_n not_o he_o that_o be_v join_v to_o the_o pope_n gal._n 3._o 28._o we_o be_v all_o one_o in_o christ_n jesus_n not_o in_o a_o earthly_a head_n many_o and_o many_o time_n do_v the_o apostle_n exhort_v they_o to_o be_v of_o one_o mind_n and_o accord_v and_o take_v heed_n of_o schism_n and_o maintain_v peace_n and_o he_o reprove_v their_o division_n at_o large_a yet_o do_v he_o never_o mention_v such_o a_o sin_n as_o divide_v from_o a_o earthly_a head_n nor_o ever_o once_o direct_v they_o to_o a_o pope_n or_o general_n council_n as_o the_o centre_n of_o their_o unity_n or_o the_o necessary_a mean_n of_o cure_v division_n peter_n himself_o exhort_v they_o to_o be_v all_o of_o one_o mind_n 1_o pet._n 3._o 8._o but_o never_a to_o be_v all_o unite_a in_o he_o as_o their_o head_n the_o apostle_n paul_n be_v punctual_a in_o describe_v the_o officer_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o people_n duty_n to_o they_o but_o he_o never_o describe_v a_o pope_n or_o any_o earthly_a head_n of_o that_o church_n nor_o ever_o tell_v the_o people_n of_o their_o duty_n to_o such_o and_o if_o such_o a_o suppose_a fundamental_a shall_v be_v quite_o forget_v by_o man_n that_o belieive_v it_o and_o teach_v other_o that_o which_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v it_o be_v incredible_o strange_a that_o paul_n write_v to_o the_o roman_n shall_v never_o mind_v they_o of_o the_o honour_n of_o their_o sea_n or_o their_o duty_n to_o their_o supereminent_a prelate_n be_v his_o forgetfulness_n or_o unbelief_n and_o sure_o he_o will_v never_o have_v so_o sharp_o reprove_v they_o of_o corinth_n for_o contention_n in_o say_v i_o be_o of_o paul_n and_o i_o of_o apollo_n and_o i_o of_o cephas_n and_o i_o of_o christ_n if_o he_o have_v think_v they_o must_v have_v be_v unite_v in_o cephas_n without_o once_o tell_v they_o of_o such_o a_o mean_n of_o union_n and_o reconciliation_n he_o say_v be_v christ_n divide_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v you_o must_v be_v all_o unite_a in_o he_o but_o he_o say_v not_o be_v cephas_n divide_v but_o plain_o make_v the_o exalter_n of_o cephas_n a_o party_n that_o be_v guilty_a of_o division_n and_o chap._n 3._o 3_o 4_o 5._o tell_v they_o plain_o that_o this_o show_v that_o they_o be_v carnal_a and_o speak_v of_o all_o other_o in_o his_o own_o person_n and_o apollo_n say_v who_o then_o be_v paul_n or_o who_o be_v apollo_n but_o minister_n by_o who_o you_o believe_v they_o have_v not_o then_o learned_a to_o answer_v why_o cephas_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o 1_o cor._n 46._o he_o speak_v as_o if_o it_o be_v purposely_o to_o a_o papist_n all_o these_o thing_n brethren_n i_o have_v in_o a_o figure_n transfer_v to_o myself_o and_o to_o apollo_n for_o your_o sake_n that_o you_o may_v learn_v in_o we_o not_o to_o think_v of_o man_n above_o that_o which_o be_v write_v that_o no_o one_o of_o you_o be_v puff_v up_o for_o one_o against_o another_o what_o not_o for_o peter_n no_o not_o for_o peter_n himself_o and_o doubtless_o paul_n do_v not_o believe_v his_o supremacy_n when_o he_o so_o presume_v to_o reprove_v he_o to_o his_o face_n gal._n 2._o so_o 1_o cor._n 10._o 16_o 17._o there_o be_v mention_n of_o our_o be_v all_o one_o bread_n and_o one_o body_n but_o that_o be_v because_o we_o be_v all_o partaker_n of_o that_o one_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o because_o we_o be_v unite_v in_o the_o pope_n or_o any_o other_o moreover_o when_o the_o disciple_n strive_v who_o shall_v be_v great_a christ_n express_o rebuke_v such_o thought_n and_o instead_o of_o grant_v any_o of_o they_o that_o desire_v he_o deny_v it_o to_o they_o all_o mat._n 22._o 25_o 26._o luke_n 22._o 26._o the_o king_n of_o the_o gentile_n rule_v over_o they_o and_o be_v call_v gracious_a lord_n but_o with_o you_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o bellarmine_n indeed_o can_v merry_o hence_o gather_v that_o there_o must_v be_v one_o appoint_v to_o be_v the_o great_a because_o christ_n say_v he_o that_o will_v be_v great_a let_v he_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o all_o this_o be_v to_o make_v good_a their_o charge_n against_o the_o scripture_n that_o it_o be_v a_o nose_n of_o wax_n by_o their_o presumptuons_a abuse_n of_o it_o as_o some_o man_n will_v prove_v the_o apostasy_n of_o the_o saint_n by_o their_o own_o apostatise_v when_o yet_o they_o prove_v it_o not_o though_o they_o ruin_v themselves_o do_v not_o christ_n by_o these_o word_n reprehend_v their_o seek_n of_o a_o supremacy_n and_o yet_o do_v he_o grant_v it_o oh_o but_o it_o be_v only_a tyranny_n that_o christ_n forbid_v they_o answ_n that_o which_o christ_n acknowledge_v in_o the_o king_n of_o the_o nation_n without_o reprehension_n that_o be_v it_o which_o he_o deny_v to_o his_o disciple_n but_o it_o be_v not_o tyranny_n but_o dominion_n which_o christ_n thus_o acknowledge_v in_o and_o allow_v to_o the_o king_n of_o the_o nation_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o tyranny_n but_o dominion_n which_o he_o forbid_v to_o his_o disciple_n that_o which_o christ_n here_o speak_v of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o nation_n be_v somewhat_o common_a to_o all_o king_n and_o so_o as_o king_n but_o tyranny_n be_v not_o common_a to_o all_o king_n nor_o to_o they_o as_o king_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o tyranny_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o moreover_o its_o plain_a that_o it_o be_v a_o greatness_n in_o desire_n and_o affectation_n that_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o christ_n speech_n and_o not_o a_o allow_a supremacy_n and_o that_o he_o forbid_v this_o supremacy_n in_o the_o follow_a word_n let_v he_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o all_o q._n d._n i_o allow_v in_o my_o kingdom_n to_o the_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n no_o other_o greatness_n or_o superiority_n above_o other_o but_o what_o consist_v in_o holiness_n and_o humility_n and_o do_v good_a and_o so_o in_o disclaim_v of_o rule_v greatness_n in_o luke_n 9_o there_o be_v mention_n of_o he_o that_o be_v least_o etc._n etc._n it_o follow_v not_o thence_o that_o one_o be_v appoint_v to_o be_v the_o low_a and_o if_o the_o will_n of_o christ_n be_v know_v to_o they_o that_o one_o shall_v be_v the_o supreme_a and_o this_o be_v peter_n what_o need_v they_o strive_v any_o further_a about_o it_o or_o why_o do_v he_o not_o rebuke_v they_o for_o resist_v their_o supreme_a again_o i_o say_v that_o i_o can_v see_v how_o it_o can_v stand_v with_o the_o wisdom_n or_o goodness_n of_o christ_n the_o lawgiver_n of_o his_o church_n or_o the_o perfection_n of_o his_o law_n or_o how_o it_o can_v be_v any_o way_n probable_a that_o he_o shall_v be_v whole_o silent_a of_o so_o great_a a_o point_n as_o the_o headship_n and_o centre_n of_o the_o church_n unity_n never_o give_v we_o either_o the_o name_n or_o title_n of_o such_o a_o head_n nor_o the_o seat_n of_o his_o empire_n nor_o appoint_v he_o his_o work_n nor_o direct_v he_o how_o to_o do_v it_o when_o he_o have_v the_o great_a work_n in_o the_o world_n to_o do_v as_o these_o man_n suppose_v and_o such_o as_o surpass_v the_o strength_n of_o man_n yea_o of_o a_o thousand_o man_n never_o give_v he_o any_o advice_n and_o direction_n for_o the_o determine_n of_o his_o very_o many_o occurrent_a difficulty_n nor_o once_o give_v we_o any_o of_o his_o power_n nor_o tell_v we_o of_o his_o prerogative_n nor_o tell_v we_o what_o officer_n he_o shall_v appoint_v under_o he_o and_o how_o nor_o once_o tell_v any_o man_n of_o his_o duty_n to_o obey_v he_o never_o tell_v we_o any_o thing_n of_o the_o succession_n of_o this_o sovereign_n in_o who_o it_o shall_v reside_v nor_o once_o tell_v we_o historical_o of_o the_o exercise_n of_o